Selected quad for the lemma: book_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
book_n call_v church_n rome_n 2,941 5 6.6026 4 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A12701 An ansvvere to Master Iohn De Albines, notable discourse against heresies (as his frendes call his booke) compiled by Thomas Spark pastor of Blechley in the county of Buck Sparke, Thomas, 1548-1616.; Albin de Valsergues, Jean d', d. 1566. Marques de la vraye église catholique. English. 1591 (1591) STC 23019; ESTC S117703 494,957 544

There are 26 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

the_o picture_n of_o jesus_n or_o soon_o of_o the_o saint_n yet_o he_o condemn_v it_o as_o contrary_a both_o to_o the_o scripture_n and_o christian_a religion_n &_o therefore_o persuade_v he_o not_o to_o suffer_v any_o such_o thing_n any_o more_o for_o it_o become_v he_o to_o banish_v such_o superstition_n which_o be_v unseemly_a for_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n yea_o lactantius_n lib._n 2_o cap._n 19_o of_o his_o divine_a institution_n say_v flat_o that_o their_o can_v be_v no_o religion_n where_o there_o be_v a_o image_n he_o live_v &_o flourish_v in_o the_o year_n 320._o and_o s_o augustine_n who_o live_v after_o all_o these_o before_o name_v for_o he_o die_v not_o before_o the_o year_n 430._o de_fw-la consensu_fw-la euangelistarum_fw-la lib._n 1._o cap_n 2._o write_v that_o they_o even_o deserve_v to_o err_v which_o seek_v christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n not_o in_o book_n but_o in_o paint_a wall_n yea_o gregory_n the_o great_a as_o they_o call_v he_o bishop_n of_o rome_n though_o they_o the_o paint_n of_o story_n for_o a_o ornament_n of_o the_o church_n be_v think_v tolerable_a yet_o he_o lib._n 7._o epist_n 109._o &_o lib._n 9_o epist_n 9_o to_o serenus_n slat_o condemn_v the_o adore_a &_o worship_v of_o image_n and_o whereas_o by_o occasion_n of_o this_o tolerate_n of_o historical_a paint_n of_o they_o through_o the_o superstition_n &_o corruption_n of_o man_n nature_n within_o short_a time_n by_o little_a &_o little_a the_o worship_v of_o they_o grow_v to_o be_v too_o much_o use_v &_o like_v of_o many_o especial_o in_o these_o western_a part_n &_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n themselves_o by_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 700._o the_o emperor_n leo_n the_o three_o in_o a_o council_n hold_v at_o constantinople_n consist_v of_o 330._o bishop_n there_o with_o the_o consent_n of_o that_o council_n decree_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v quite_o remove_v out_o of_o church_n &_o burn_v &_o severe_o he_o punish_v those_o which_o notwithstanding_o will_v persevere_v in_o the_o worship_v of_o they_o and_o the_o same_o course_n take_v his_o successor_n constantine_n by_o another_o great_a council_n hold_v their_o ratify_v the_o former_a &_o two_o emperor_n more_o succeed_v he_o notwithstanding_o all_o this_o while_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n with_o stand_v they_o what_o they_o may_v &_o decree_v as_o fast_o for_o the_o retain_v &_o worship_v of_o they_o as_o they_o can_v as_o it_o appear_v in_o sigebert_n blondus_n &_o other_o howbeit_o though_o also_o in_o the_o time_n of_o irene_n &_o the_o nonage_n of_o her_o son_n constantine_n in_o the_o east_n through_o the_o suggestion_n of_o therasius_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n they_o get_v there_o a_o council_n hold_v at_o nicaea_n consist_v of_o three_o hundred_o &_o fifty_o bishop_n where_o to_o curry_v favour_n again_o with_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o upon_o the_o former_a occasion_n as_o it_o appear_v in_o sigebert_n &_o other_o have_v be_v a_o shrewd_a traitorous_a mean_n to_o cause_v these_o western_a part_n to_o revolt_v from_o the_o empire_n they_o decree_v according_a to_o their_o humour_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o image_n yet_o africa_n &_o asia_n the_o great_a can_v never_o be_v bring_v to_o receive_v those_o canon_n there_o make_v yea_o &_o that_o more_o be_v though_o by_o that_o time_n the_o pope_n have_v make_v charles_n the_o great_a very_o much_o behold_v to_o he_o in_o be_v the_o mean_n to_o translate_v the_o empire_n of_o the_o west_n unto_o he_o so_o be_v those_o canon_n in_o this_o point_n mislike_v &_o contradict_v here_o in_o thes_n western_a part_n that_o a_o council_n in_o his_o time_n &_o by_o his_o mean_n as_o the_o emperor_n be_v call_v at_o francford_n whereunto_o come_v many_o bishop_n of_o italy_n france_n germany_n &_o other_o country_n yet_o there_o even_o for_o this_o point_n be_v that_o council_n of_o nice_a reject_v &_o conden_v as_o a_o wicked_a council_n witness_n both_o regino_n lib._n 2._o anno_fw-la 794._o &_o also_o one_o hinckmare_n not_o long_o after_o those_o time_n archbishop_n of_o rheims_n write_v against_o another_o of_o his_o name_n they_o bishop_n of_o jandune_n or_o lavedune_n as_o some_o call_v it_o ca._n 20._o where_o he_o for_o further_a proof_n of_o this_o to_o be_v true_a write_v that_o the_o bishop_n their_o assemble_v cause_v a_o book_n of_o purpose_n to_o be_v write_v &_o send_v to_o rome_n contain_v at_o large_a a_o confutation_n of_o all_o the_o reason_n use_v for_o image_n at_o nicaea_n which_o in_o his_o young_a year_n he_o see_v &_o which_o the_o keeper_n of_o the_o pope_n library_n augustine_n steuchus_n confess_v to_o lie_v there_o write_v in_o ancient_a character_n the_o donatione_n constantini_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 59_o nu_fw-la 60._o and_o roger_n hovoden_n who_o live_v 400._o year_n ago_o in_o his_o continuation_n of_o bedeas_n story_n in_o the_o year_n 792._o show_v how_o charles_n send_v the_o canon_n of_o that_o council_n of_o nice_a hither_o wherein_o as_o he_o say_v it_o be_v decree_v that_o image_n ought_v to_o be_v adore_v which_o the_o church_n of_o god_n utter_o detest_v report_v that_o one_o albirus_n here_o write_v a_o epistle_n against_o that_o determination_n marvellous_o ground_v upon_o the_o scripture_n which_o he_o carry_v into_o france_n as_o he_o say_v in_o the_o name_n of_o our_o bishop_n by_o occasion_n whereof_o the_o rather_o it_o shall_v seem_v short_o after_o charles_n think_v meet_v to_o call_v the_o foresay_a council_n at_o francford_n all_o these_o thing_n notwithstanding_o never_o be_v image_n pillar_n and_o cross_n more_o idolatrous_o decree_v to_o be_v worship_v their_o nor_o ever_o be_v idol_n more_o gross_o adore_v of_o heretic_n or_o the_o very_a pagan_n and_o heathen_a than_o they_o have_v be_v &_o yet_o be_v of_o superstitious_a papist_n for_o they_o crouch_v &_o kneel_v unto_o they_o present_a offering_n before_o they_o they_o run_v a_o pilgrimage_n unto_o they_o and_o teach_v that_o they_o be_v to_o be_v worship_v with_o that_o honour_n that_o be_v due_a unto_o they_o who_o image_n and_o monument_n they_o be_v though_o in_o a_o other_o manner_n not_o for_o their_o own_o sake_n but_o for_o they_o who_o remembrance_n they_o be_v but_o indeed_o if_o in_o worship_v of_o they_o they_o do_v not_o principal_o respect_v the_o image_n themselves_o why_o shall_v there_o not_o be_v as_o great_a devotion_n as_o many_o pilgrimage_n &_o as_o great_a offering_n present_v &_o yield_v to_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n mary_n or_o of_o any_o other_o aswell_o in_o one_o place_n as_o in_o a_o other_o well_o howsoever_o they_o will_v do_v wicked_o herein_o and_o when_o they_o have_v do_v seek_v to_o colour_v the_o matter_n such_o in_o truth_n all_o the_o world_n see_v herein_o have_v be_v their_o deal_n that_o euthymius_n in_o his_o panoply_n have_v never_o more_o cause_v to_o name_v the_o armenian_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v idolater_n to_o the_o cross_n for_o their_o gross_a and_o superstitious_a worship_v of_o it_o than_o we_o have_v general_o to_o count_v and_o call_v the_o romanist_n flat_a idolater_n for_o their_o behaviour_n towards_o it_o and_o other_o image_n also_o thus_o then_o hope_v by_o this_o that_o i_o have_v say_v concern_v this_o point_n that_o not_o only_o thou_o may_v see_v goodreader_n when_o and_o how_o this_o point_n of_o popery_n first_o come_v in_o but_o how_o and_o by_o who_o it_o have_v be_v oppugn_v but_o consequent_o also_o that_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v herein_o destitute_a both_o of_o scripture_n father_n consent_n of_o christian_a region_n and_o all_o that_o she_o brag_v of_o let_v we_o see_v if_o we_o can_v show_v the_o like_a concern_v the_o other_o point_n of_o force_a single_a life_n upon_o the_o clergy_n which_o she_o hold_v to_o be_v so_o necessary_a and_o holy_a a_o ordinance_n as_o that_o by_o no_o mean_n without_o deadly_a sin_n it_o may_v be_v transgress_v even_o in_o this_o as_o in_o the_o former_a if_o we_o search_v the_o monument_n of_o antiquity_n well_o we_o shall_v find_v that_o they_o have_v very_o ancient_a heretic_n to_o be_v their_o first_o father_n &_o leader_n for_o the_o tacianist_n common_o call_v encratites_n of_o their_o abstinence_n from_o marriage_n &_o certain_a other_o thing_n who_o begin_v about_o the_o year_n one_o hundred_o forty_o two_o be_v great_a condemner_n of_o marriage_n as_o appear_v in_o aug._n ad_fw-la quodvult_fw-la deum_fw-la &_o in_o epiphanius_n write_v of_o they_o heresi_n 46._o after_o they_o spring_v up_o the_o manichee_n who_o in_o like_a manner_n be_v enemy_n to_o marriage_n but_o not_o so_o universal_o as_o the_o former_a for_o they_o permit_v it_o to_o other_o and_o restrain_v only_o their_o clergy_n from_o it_o who_o they_o call_v their_o elect_a as_o august_n witness_v of_o they_o epist_n 74._o but_o indeed_o as_o many_o as_o
never_o have_v prove_v either_o of_o these_o nor_o yet_o be_v able_a to_o do_v it_o you_o shall_v conclude_v that_o your_o prescription_n against_o our_o doctrine_n which_o you_o call_v new_a at_o your_o pleasure_n though_o indeed_o it_o be_v most_o ancient_a witness_v the_o old_a testament_n and_o the_o new_a much_o rather_o ought_v to_o take_v place_n then_z his_o in_o his_o time_n against_o heretic_n that_o then_o teach_v diverse_a basphemous_a heresy_n direct_o against_o the_o scripture_n you_o say_v our_o religion_n have_v be_v unknowen_a this_o 1500._o year_n or_o at_o least_o if_o any_o body_n seek_v to_o publish_v it_o he_o be_v condemn_v as_o a_o false_a pernicious_a heretic_n but_o you_o do_v but_o say_v thus_o you_o prove_v it_o not_o nor_o ever_o shall_v for_o it_o be_v both_o hear_v and_o know_v many_o 100_o year_n before_o you_o be_v hatch_v and_o if_o every_o one_o be_v so_o condemn_v that_o teach_v it_o than_o be_v christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n so_o condemn_v for_o unless_o by_o scripture_n we_o can_v prove_v we_o to_o be_v the_o same_o that_o they_o be_v we_o ask_v no_o favour_n at_o your_o hand_n and_o as_o long_o as_o we_o can_v do_v so_o the_o more_o we_o and_o our_o predecessor_n have_v be_v condemn_v by_o you_o the_o more_o we_o know_v we_o have_v be_v bless_v of_o god_n now_o whereas_o you_o say_v in_o this_o chapter_n further_o that_o irenaeus_n do_v withstand_v heretic_n by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n add_v your_o gloss_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o doctrine_n not_o write_v but_o deliver_v from_o hand_n to_o hand_n and_o so_o receive_v from_o age_n to_o age_n from_o the_o apostle_n to_o that_o time_n therein_o through_o the_o ambiguity_n of_o the_o word_n tradition_n crafts_o you_o seek_v to_o deceive_v your_o simple_a reader_n and_o indeed_o you_o give_v a_o gloss_n that_o corrupteeh_a the_o text_n for_o let_v that_o place_n of_o irenaeus_n in_o his_o three_o book_n and_o second_o chapter_n be_v peruse_v and_o that_o also_o which_o follow_v in_o the_o three_o chapter_n of_o the_o same_o book_n though_o either_o you_o or_o the_o printer_n mistake_v it_o send_v we_o to_o the_o five_o chapter_n where_o the_o word_n be_v not_o which_o you_o cite_v and_o most_o evident_o it_o shall_v be_v prove_v that_o though_o irenaeus_n have_v there_o the_o word_n by_o you_o cite_v yet_o by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o he_o speak_v of_o there_o he_o mean_v no_o doctrine_n nor_o point_n of_o doctrine_n as_o you_o do_v usual_o by_o that_o word_n contrary_a or_o beside_o that_o which_o be_v also_o teach_v in_o the_o word_n write_v for_o the_o question_n be_v of_o god_n the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n which_o valentinian_n &_o martion_n deny_v against_o who_o he_o there_o show_v that_o he_o fight_v first_o with_o the_o scripture_n wherewith_o when_o they_o be_v urge_v he_o say_v they_o be_v turn_v straight_o into_o a_o accusation_n of_o the_o scripture_n as_o though_o they_o be_v not_o right_a have_v not_o authority_n may_v diverse_o be_v take_v say_v further_o that_o truth_n can_v not_o be_v find_v of_o they_o by_o those_o that_o be_v ignorant_a of_o tradition_n for_o the_o truth_n be_v not_o deliver_v by_o they_o but_o by_o lively_a voice_n &_o that_o therefore_o paul_n say_v we_o speak_v wisdom_n among_o they_o that_o be_v perfect_a not_o the_o wisdom_n of_o this_o world_n and_o this_o wisdom_n to_o every_o one_o of_o they_o say_v he_o be_v that_o which_o he_o himself_o have_v devise_v of_o which_o heretic_n their_o word_n &_o you_o when_o you_o be_v call_v to_o the_o touchstone_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v so_o like_a undoubted_o you_o have_v learned_a to_o plead_v against_o the_o scripture_n for_o your_o unwritten_a tradition_n now_o when_o thus_o he_o have_v show_v how_o the_o heretic_n in_o his_o time_n shun_v trial_n by_o the_o scripture_n and_o appeal_v to_o tradition_n he_o go_v on_o and_o show_v that_o when_o he_o be_v content_v to_o come_v to_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n keep_v &_o observe_v in_o the_o church_n down_o from_o the_o apostle_n to_o those_o time_n by_o succession_n of_o pastor_n than_o they_o resist_v tradition_n also_o say_v that_o they_o be_v wise_a then_o either_o those_o pastor_n or_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o and_o so_o indeed_o neither_o by_o the_o scripture_n nor_o yet_o by_o make_v demonstration_n unto_o they_o that_o the_o same_o doctrine_n teach_v in_o the_o scripture_n be_v also_o deliver_v by_o lively_a voice_n first_o by_o the_o apostle_n and_o so_o receive_v from_o age_n to_o age_n and_o continue_v in_o by_o those_o pastor_n of_o who_o succession_n he_o speak_v can_v stop_v their_o mouth_n and_o thus_o any_o man_n of_o mean_a capacity_n may_v perceive_v that_o in_o these_o place_n irenaeus_n his_o drift_n only_o be_v to_o show_v the_o heretic_n that_o the_o doctrine_n which_o he_o teach_v concern_v god_n the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n first_o be_v warrant_v by_o the_o apostle_n writing_n and_o then_o also_o teach_v by_o they_o by_o lively_a voice_n and_o so_o deliver_v and_o continue_v from_o hand_n to_o hand_n among_o the_o faithful_a pastor_n succeed_v one_o another_o even_o unto_o that_o time_n and_o that_o he_o call_v this_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o not_o as_o you_o false_o expound_v he_o doctrine_n unwriten_a beside_o or_o contrary_n to_o that_o which_o be_v write_v as_o the_o popish_a tradition_n you_o strive_v for_o be_v if_o you_o have_v be_v dispose_v you_o may_v have_v learn_v in_o the_o 1._o chapter_n of_o the_o same_o book_n where_o he_o say_v that_o which_o first_o they_o preach_v after_o by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n tradiderunt_fw-la nobis_fw-la they_o deliver_v we_o in_o writing_n to_o be_v the_o foundation_n and_o pillar_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o indeed_o it_o be_v a_o usual_a thing_n with_o the_o father_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n often_o by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o understand_v the_o very_a same_o doctrine_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o their_o writing_n herein_o therefore_o &_o so_o likewise_o in_o all_o other_o point_n in_o controversy_n betwixt_o we_o it_o be_v a_o common_a trick_n with_o you_o papist_n to_o urge_v the_o father_n word_n quite_o contrary_a to_o their_o true_a meaning_n but_o because_o you_o first_o and_o namely_o bring_v in_o irenaeus_n for_o your_o unwriten_a tradition_n which_o be_v the_o window_n indeed_o that_o you_o will_v have_v fain_o leave_v open_a unto_o you_o for_o then_o thereby_o you_o hope_v you_o may_v thrust_v in_o and_o upon_o the_o church_n what_o you_o listen_v and_o so_o countenance_n thereby_o your_o antichristian_a doctrine_n when_o all_o other_o shift_n fail_v let_v we_o see_v whither_o this_o can_v yet_o further_o be_v make_v manifest_a out_o of_o he_o he_o as_o eusebius_n report_v hist_n eccles_n lib._n 4._o cap._n 14._o say_v that_o polycarpe_n teach_v that_o one_o and_o sole_a truth_n which_o he_o have_v learn_v of_o the_o apostle_n quae_fw-la &_o ecclesia_fw-la tradit_fw-la which_o the_o church_n deliver_v forth_o where_o of_o necessity_n by_o those_o thing_n which_o the_o church_n deliver_v by_o tradition_n that_o he_o there_o speak_v of_o you_o may_v not_o understand_v any_o other_o but_o those_o which_o have_v warrant_n from_o the_o word_n write_v and_o in_o no_o case_n those_o thing_n that_o be_v beside_o that_o or_o contrary_n thereunto_o for_o then_o he_o will_v not_o have_v call_v that_o which_o polycarpe_n preach_v the_o one_o and_o sole_a truth_n for_o questionless_a those_o thing_n be_v true_a that_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o this_o clear_o appear_v if_o you_o mark_v the_o word_n as_o they_o be_v in_o irenaeus_n himself_o in_o his_o 5._o book_n &_o 20._o cap._n that_o eusebius_n have_v relation_n unto_o which_o be_v these_o polycarpe_n do_v mention_v or_o teach_v those_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v hear_v of_o the_o apostle_n that_o be_v all_o thing_n agreeable_a to_o the_o scripture_n again_o the_o same_o irenaeus_n in_o his_o 3._o book_n and_o 3._o cap._n which_o be_v one_o of_o the_o chapter_n by_o you_o before_o allege_v say_v that_o under_o clement_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n wrought_v to_o the_o corinthian_n show_v they_o quam_fw-la traditionem_fw-la what_o tradition_n of_o late_a they_o have_v receive_v of_o the_o apostle_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_a and_o so_o forth_o as_o be_v express_v in_o moses_n be_v the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o that_o he_o be_v so_o teach_v to_o be_v of_o the_o church_n say_v he_o they_o that_o will_v learn_v may_v by_o the_o scripture_n and_o so_o they_o may_v understand_v the_o apostolic_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n where_o it_o be_v most_o clear_a that_o he_o tell_v we_o himself_o
of_o man_n merit_n and_o pray_v to_o saint_n etc._n etc._n and_o franciscus_n petrarcha_n flourish_v about_o that_o time_n in_o his_o ninteenth_n &_o twenty_o epistle_n call_v the_o seat_n of_o the_o papacy_n the_o whoar_n of_o babylon_n the_o temple_n of_o heresy_n and_o treachery_n and_o in_o such_o sort_n describe_v it_o both_o at_o rome_n and_o at_o avinion_n where_o then_o the_o pope_n sit_v that_o he_o as_o it_o there_o seem_v count_v it_o the_o great_a evil_a that_o can_v befall_v a_o man_n to_o be_v make_v pope_n johannes_n de_fw-fr rupe_n scissâ_fw-la about_o 10._o year_n after_o in_o the_o year_n 1340_o be_v so_o sore_a a_o rebuker_n of_o the_o abomination_n of_o the_o clergy_n that_o he_o be_v therefore_o imprison_v he_o also_o compare_v the_o pope_n to_o a_o bird_n rich_o clad_v with_o other_o bird_n feather_n &_o yet_o so_o as_o that_o for_o the_o pride_n of_o that_o bird_n he_o prophesi_v that_o the_o time_n will_v come_v when_o the_o other_o bird_n will_v call_v for_o their_o feather_n again_o and_o so_o make_v he_o know_v himself_o conradus_n hagar_n one_o of_o the_o city_n herbipolis_n about_o this_o time_n preach_v 24_o year_n as_o it_o appear_v in_o the_o record_n of_o otho_n bishop_n of_o that_o city_n that_o the_o mass_n be_v no_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n either_o for_o the_o quick_a or_o the_o dead_a and_o within_o three_o year_n after_o the_o book_n call_v paenitentiarius_n asini_fw-la be_v write_v wherein_o the_o pope_n be_v resemble_v to_o the_o wolf_n the_o clergy_n to_o the_o fox_n and_o the_o laity_n to_o the_o poor_a ass_n in_o the_o year_n one_o thousand_o three_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o gerrhardus_fw-la ridder_n write_v a_o book_n call_v lachrima_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la wherein_o he_o vehement_o inveigh_v against_o beg_a friar_n michael_n chesenas_n before_o mention_v among_o other_o thing_n preach_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n and_o rome_n babylon_n he_o have_v many_o follower_n whereof_o i_o read_v some_o be_v burn_v as_o johannes_n de_fw-fr castilone_n &_o franciscus_n de_fw-fr arcatarâ_fw-la and_o he_o himself_o be_v provincial_a of_o the_o grey_a friar_n be_v deprive_v and_o condemn_v in_o the_o year_n one_o thousand_o three_o hundred_o twenty_o two_o or_o there_o about_o and_o in_o the_o time_n of_o innocent_a the_o 6._o 1353_o i_o read_v that_o two_o franciscane_a friar_n be_v burn_v at_o auinion_n whereof_o the_o one_o be_v one_o john_n de_fw-fr rochetalayda_n otherwise_o call_v hayabolus_n witness_n premonstrat_n and_o henry_n herford_n who_o as_o henry_n of_o herford_n write_v preach_v in_o the_o time_n of_o pope_n clement_n the_o 6_o in_o the_o year_n 1345_o that_o he_o be_v command_v by_o god_n to_o preach_v that_o rome_n be_v babylon_n and_o that_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o cardinal_n be_v very_a antichrist_n and_o be_v bring_v before_o the_o pope_n for_o it_o to_o his_o face_n he_o bold_o do_v advouch_v the_o same_o brigit_fw-la who_o you_o yourselves_o have_v make_v a_o saint_n about_o the_o year_n 1370_o in_o her_o book_n of_o revelation_n be_v a_o most_o bitter_a rebuker_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o clergy_n and_o so_o likewise_o be_v katherine_n senensis_n 2_o year_n after_o as_o antonine_n write_v in_o his_o 3_o part_n of_o his_o story_n term_v the_o pope_n a_o murderer_n of_o soul_n a_o spiller_n &_o pillar_n of_o the_o flock_n of_o christ_n say_v that_o they_o be_v more_o abominable_a they_o jew_n more_o cruel_a they_o judas_n more_o unjust_a they_o pilate_n &_o worse_o than_o lucifer_n himself_o and_o the_o former_a of_o they_o plain_o prophesy_v that_o their_o kingdom_n shall_v be_v throw_v down_o as_o a_o millstone_n into_o the_o deep_a &_o that_o the_o clergy_n have_v turn_v all_o god_n commandment_n into_o these_o two_o word_n dam_fw-la pecuniam_fw-la give_v money_n mathias_n parisiensis_fw-la a_o bohemian_a about_o the_o year_n 1370_o write_v a_o large_a book_n of_o antichrist_n prove_v he_o to_o be_v come_v &_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v he_o &_o the_o locust_n in_o the_o apocalyps_n he_o say_v be_v his_o hypocritical_a clergy_n about_o this_o very_a time_n greg._n the_o 11_o send_v a_o bull_n to_o the_o archbishop_n of_o prage_n stir_v he_o up_o thereby_o to_o persecute_v one_o melitzius_n and_o his_o follower_n who_o be_v charge_v in_o that_o bull_n to_o have_v preach_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n and_o to_o have_v have_v congregation_n follow_v he_o as_o brushius_fw-la write_v in_o the_o year_n 1390._o there_o be_v burn_v at_o bringa_n 36._o citizen_n of_o moguntia_n for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o waldense_n hold_v also_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n and_o massens_n record_v that_o there_o be_v burn_v about_o the_o same_o time_n 140._o for_o the_o same_o cause_n in_o the_o province_n of_o narbon_n and_o the_o same_o author_n testify_v that_o in_o the_o year_n 1210._o 24_o suffer_v at_o paris_n and_o that_o the_o next_o year_n there_o be_v 400._o burn_v for_o the_o like_a cause_n 80._o behead_v prince_n armericus_n hang_v and_o the_o lady_n of_o the_o castle_n stone_v to_o death_n hoveden_n also_o note_v that_o about_o these_o time_n there_o be_v great_a number_n put_v to_o death_n in_o france_n for_o this_o cause_n of_o religion_n trithemius_n write_v that_o ecchardus_fw-la a_o dominic_n friar_n be_v put_v to_o death_n at_o hiddelberge_n in_o the_o year_n 1330_o for_o withstand_v the_o popish_a doctrine_n there_o be_v a_o old_a monument_n of_o process_n against_o 44●_n person_n for_o the_o same_o cause_n in_o pomerania_n marchia_n and_o place_n there_o about_o in_o the_o year_n 1391._o and_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o if_o the_o record_n and_o statute_n of_o all_o country_n in_o these_o western_a part_n shall_v be_v search_v even_o thereby_o will_v it_o appear_v that_o the_o number_n of_o those_o that_o have_v gainesay_v the_o pope_n &_o his_o proceed_n in_o the_o time_n of_o his_o great_a flourish_n and_o cruelty_n '_o have_n be_v from_o time_n to_o time_n infinite_a how_o much_o great_a then_o be_v it_o likely_a be_v the_o number_n of_o they_o that_o informer_n time_n when_o he_o be_v not_o grow_v to_o that_o power_n to_o vex_v the_o servant_n of_o god_n as_o he_o have_v be_v for_o these_o last_o 300._o or_o 400._o year_n have_v profess_v the_o truth_n bold_o against_o he_o thus_o be_v we_o come_v to_o john_n wicklifes_n time_n who_o flourish_v here_o in_o england_n about_o the_o year_n of_o the_o lord_n 1372_o and_o yet_o i_o have_v for_o the_o avoid_v of_o too_o too_o much_o tediousness_n omit_v the_o name_n of_o a_o number_n of_o famous_a man_n that_o have_v also_o withstand_v popery_n and_o join_v with_o we_o in_o sundrypointe_v against_o they_o in_o those_o time_n that_o i_o have_v run_v through_o as_o namely_o alcuinus_fw-la archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n direct_o with_o we_o against_o they_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o real_a presence_n aelfricus_fw-la joachim_n abbot_n of_o calabria_n arnoldus_fw-la brixianus_fw-la almericus_n a_o learned_a bishop_n in_o innocent_n time_n the_o three_o judge_v a●_n heretic_n for_o teach_v as_o we_o do_v against_o image_n beringaiius_n reymundus_n earl_n of_o tolossa_n lord_n peter_n de_fw-fr cogneriis_fw-la eudo_fw-la duke_n of_o burgandie_n the_o archbishop_n of_o armah_n and_o infinite_a other_o i_o may_v also_o here_o again_o have_v remember_v that_o with_o h._n mutius_n write_v of_o a_o 100_o burn_v in_o one_o day_n in_o alsatia_n under_o innocent_a the_o 3_o in_o the_o year_n 1215_o when_o antichrist_n in_o the_o lateran_n council_n bring_v in_o the_o new_a and_o monstrous_a article_n of_o transubstantiation_n show_v himself_o to_o be_v even_o grow_v to_o his_o high_a degree_n of_o iniquity_n but_o to_o let_v these_o pass_v and_o to_o proceed_v john_n wicklife_o as_o it_o be_v famous_o know_v be_v with_o we_o against_o you_o in_o the_o most_o and_o weighty_a thing_n betwixt_o you_o and_o we_o in_o controversy_n and_o therefore_o in_o your_o council_n of_o constance_n you_o condemn_v he_o and_o cause_v his_o dry_a and_o rot_a bone_n to_o be_v take_v up_o again_o and_o burn_v while_o he_o live_v he_o have_v many_o great_a learned_a man_n here_o in_o england_n that_o join_v with_o he_o as_o namely_o nicholas_n herford_n philip_n repington_n john_n ashton_n and_o laurence_n redeman_n and_o so_o many_o follower_n have_v he_o and_o they_o and_o he_o have_v such_o favour_n and_o protection_n especial_o of_o the_o duke_n of_o lancaster_n that_o then_o be_v that_o though_o your_o prelate_n here_o in_o england_n vex_v and_o molest_v they_o what_o they_o can_v yet_o they_o and_o their_o favourer_n in_o short_a time_n grow_v to_o that_o strength_n and_o multitude_n that_o by_o the_o year_n 1422_o henry_n chicheley_n then_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n certify_v the_o pope_n that_o they_o all_o can_v not_o be_v suppress_v they_o be_v so_o many_o but_o by_o force_n of_o war_n
since_o augustine_n the_o monk_n come_v into_o england_n as_o i_o have_v say_v and_o for_o 300_o year_n after_o he_o your_o glorious_a succession_n must_v fail_v there_o be_v so_o many_o apparent_a difference_n for_o so_o long_a space_n at_o least_o betwixt_o the_o opinion_n that_o your_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n hold_v now_o and_o they_o that_o be_v hold_v then_o take_v heed_n therefore_o while_o you_o measure_v thus_o to_o we_o and_o so_o seek_v to_o disgrace_v they_o who_o name_n we_o cite_v that_o the_o same_o be_v not_o measure_v to_o you_o again_o &_o so_o the_o neck_n of_o your_o visible_a succession_n be_v break_v to_o the_o peril_n of_o the_o life_n of_o your_o church_n which_o draw_v her_o breath_n thereby_o now_o to_o come_v to_o your_o disgrace_n of_o our_o church_n with_o the_o difference_n of_o opinion_n betwixt_o luther_n and_o zuinglius_fw-la and_o your_o lay_n to_o our_o charge_n all_o the_o heresy_n that_o have_v spring_v up_o since_o luther_n begin_v first_o to_o preach_v against_o you_o therein_o do_v you_o we_o manifold_a wrong_n for_o who_o know_v not_o that_o it_o be_v no_o strange_a or_o new_a thing_n to_o find_v the_o dear_a servant_n of_o god_n and_o the_o true_a member_n of_o christ_n church_n sometime_o and_o in_o some_o thing_n differ_v and_o hoat_o dissent_v in_o opinion_n do_v we_o not_o read_v mat._n 16._o that_o one_o thing_n seem_v good_a to_o peter_n and_o the_o contrary_n seem_v and_o be_v indeed_o good_a in_o christ_n judgement_n do_v not_o peter_n take_v one_o course_n and_o paul_n another_o at_o antioch_n galat._n 2._o insomuch_o that_o paul_n there_o rebuke_v peter_n open_o and_o sharp_o and_o find_v we_o not_o act._n 15._o paul_n and_o barnabas_n grow_v to_o that_o heat_n of_o contention_n about_o the_o receive_n again_o or_o refuse_v of_o john_n mark_v that_o they_o part_v company_n and_o if_o we_o leave_v the_o scripture_n and_o go_v down_o to_o late_a time_n and_o view_v the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n even_o in_o the_o pure_a time_n thereof_o we_o shall_v find_v it_o no_o strange_a thing_n to_o see_v diversity_n of_o opinion_n and_o therefore_o also_o hot_a contention_n betwixt_o those_o who_o yet_o we_o will_v and_o must_v account_v the_o true_a member_n of_o the_o church_n betwixt_o polycrates_n &_o victor_n the_o east_n and_o west_n church_n irenaeus_n and_o certain_a other_o bishop_n of_o france_n and_o some_o pope_n the_o contention_n about_o the_o observation_n of_o easter_n be_v such_o euse_n 5.21.22.23.24_o that_o one_o side_n excommunicate_v another_o that_o diverse_a synod_n be_v hold_v to_o appease_v it_o and_o yet_o it_o continue_v 300_o year_n &_o more_o and_o who_o know_v not_o that_o there_o be_v contention_n betwixt_o cyprian_a &_o other_o bishop_n of_o africa_n &_o cornelius_n &_o stephanus_n bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o that_o they_o even_o they_o at_o rome_n encroch_v too_o much_o as_o the_o other_o thought_n to_o intermeddle_v within_z the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n in_o receive_v conden_v &_o excommunicate_v fugitive_n that_o run_v to_o rome_n from_o thence_o neither_o be_v the_o controversy_n small_a betwixt_o they_o about_o the_o rebaptise_v of_o those_o that_o have_v be_v before_o only_o baptize_v by_o heretic_n for_o proof_n of_o both_o which_o point_n i_o refer_v you_o to_o the_o three_o and_o four_o epistle_n of_o cyprian_n first_o book_n of_o epistle_n and_o to_o the_o first_o epistle_n of_o his_o second_o book_n and_o to_o the_o three_o and_o four_o chapter_n of_o eusebius_n seven_o book_n basil_n also_o and_o the_o church_n of_o caesarea_n as_o it_o be_v well_o know_v be_v at_o hot_a contention_n about_o ecclesiastical_a song_n and_o ceremony_n theophilus_n of_o alexandria_n and_o chrysostome_n of_o constantinople_n have_v between_o they_o a_o violent_a and_o troublesome_a contention_n and_o great_a part_n take_v there_o be_v of_o both_o side_n and_o that_o along_o time_n cyrillus_n of_o alexandria_n write_v against_o theodoret_n in_o a_o controversy_n of_o catholic_a religion_n betwixt_o miletius_n a_o bishop_n of_o egypt_n and_o one_o peter_n of_o alexandria_n and_o their_o follower_n of_o both_o side_n there_o arise_v and_o continue_v a_o long_a while_n to_o the_o great_a trouble_n of_o the_o church_n a_o lamentable_a contention_n all_o ecclesiastical_a story_n for_o the_o most_o part_n have_v with_o grief_n make_v report_n of_o these_o yea_o down_o from_o christ_n to_o the_o age_n wherein_o every_o one_o of_o they_o write_v it_o too_o plain_o appear_v in_o they_o that_o there_o be_v never_o yet_o any_o one_o century_n of_o year_n but_o it_o have_v have_v new_a contention_n and_o those_o many_o not_o only_o betwixt_o heretic_n and_o catholic_n but_o also_o even_o among_o those_o that_o otherwise_o of_o both_o side_n be_v to_o be_v repute_v sound_n christian_n hierom_n and_o augustine_n as_o all_o man_n will_v confess_v be_v in_o their_o time_n worthy_a so_o to_o be_v account_v and_o yet_o it_o appear_v in_o their_o work_n that_o there_o be_v great_a diversity_n of_o opinion_n and_o that_o in_o many_o thing_n of_o great_a moment_n betwixt_o they_o epiphanius_n bishop_n of_o cyprus_n and_o chrysostome_n of_o who_o i_o speak_v before_o be_v both_o famous_a christian_n and_o yet_o the_o story_n of_o their_o time_n show_v that_o they_o be_v bitter_a enemy_n it_o be_v notorious_o know_v that_o among_o the_o bishop_n assemble_v against_o the_o arrian_n at_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a constantine_n by_o the_o book_n offer_v unto_o he_o one_o against_o a_o other_o find_v that_o they_o then_o have_v among_o themselves_o many_o contention_n and_o variety_n of_o opinion_n and_o infinite_a it_o be_v to_o reckon_v up_o all_o the_o example_n that_o may_v easy_o be_v find_v to_o this_o end_n indeed_o i_o read_v for_o these_o and_o such_o like_a difference_n the_o jew_n and_o heathen_a people_n mock_v at_o the_o christian_n and_o hereby_o seek_v mighty_o to_o deface_v they_o and_o their_o religion_n seven_o stromat_n clement_n alexandrini_n but_o i_o never_o read_v that_o either_o then_o or_o since_o ever_o any_o sound_n christian_n though_o for_o this_o cause_n they_o take_v occasion_n to_o mourn_v yet_o that_o they_o or_o any_o of_o they_o take_v occasion_n to_o condemn_v either_o the_o one_o side_n or_o the_o other_o or_o both_o as_o not_o to_o be_v therefore_o at_o all_o of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n for_o notwithstanding_o these_o difference_n they_o see_v that_o they_o join_v together_o otherwise_o as_o brethren_n in_o hold_v together_o the_o fundamental_a point_n and_o that_o they_o who_o you_o call_v lutheran_n &_o zwinglians_n do_v so_o the_o book_n of_o late_o set_v forth_o of_o the_o harmony_n of_o the_o confession_n of_o all_o the_o church_n that_o hereabout_o profess_v the_o gospel_n do_v make_v it_o most_o manifest_a and_o evident_a and_o therefore_o for_o any_o force_n that_o this_o reason_n carry_v with_o it_o this_o their_o difference_n which_o be_v in_o effect_n only_o about_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o presence_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n they_o both_o may_v be_v member_n of_o the_o true_a ancient_a catholic_n church_n as_o well_o as_o these_o other_o who_o i_o have_v name_v another_o wrong_n that_o herein_o they_o offer_v we_o be_v this_o that_o be_v themselves_o at_o variance_n among_o themselves_o and_o have_v have_v many_o and_o great_a contention_n and_o yet_o have_v still_o some_o about_o as_o great_a a_o matter_n of_o religion_n as_o this_o that_o yet_o forget_v the_o beam_n in_o their_o own_o eye_n like_o hypocrite_n they_o be_v so_o busy_a with_o the_o moat_n in_o we_o for_o who_o so_o read_v the_o history_n of_o their_o pope_n write_v by_o their_o own_o friend_n beside_o a_o number_n of_o hot_a and_o contentious_a schism_n trouble_v all_o christendom_n for_o many_o year_n together_o yea_o sometime_o forty_o year_n continue_v betwixt_o their_o pope_n &_o antipope_n he_o shall_v find_v it_o so_o common_a a_o thing_n for_o the_o succeed_a pope_n to_o contrary_a the_o proceed_n of_o his_o predecessor_n as_o though_o the_o chief_a glory_n of_o their_o papacy_n lie_v in_o that_o and_o therefore_o poor_a gratian_n take_v a_o cumbersome_a work_n in_o hand_n to_o make_v a_o concord_n of_o such_o discord_v canon_n their_o religion_n consider_v it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o great_a controversy_n that_o can_v be_v whither_o the_o pope_n or_o a_o general_a council_n have_v the_o superior_a authority_n and_o so_o must_v be_v the_o carrier_n of_o the_o church_n tongue_n to_o decide_v and_o determine_v controversy_n and_o yet_o even_o in_o this_o controversy_n they_o be_v so_o at_o concord_n that_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n and_o basil_n determine_v one_o way_n and_o the_o counsel_n of_o florence_n and_o ferraria_n the_o other_o way_n and_o yet_o both_o side_n have_v his_o stout_a champion_n the_o scotiste_n and_o thomist_n many_o a_o
according_a to_o the_o succession_n of_o those_o bishop_n unto_o who_o only_o the_o apostle_n commit_v the_o custody_n of_o the_o church_n throughout_o the_o world_n the_o which_o say_v he_o be_v come_v to_o us._n this_o say_v irenaeus_n do_v write_v in_o his_o three_o book_n and_o second_o chapter_n that_o he_o and_o his_o fellow_n do_v withstand_v the_o valentinian_o and_o the_o marcioniste_n which_o be_v great_a heretic_n by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n word_n apostle_n a_o curse_a gloss_n for_o it_o corrupt_v the_o text_n for_o the_o tradition_n that_o he_o speak_v of_o have_v good_a warrant_n in_o the_o write_v word_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o doctrine_n not_o write_v but_o receive_v from_o age_n to_o age_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o so_o continue_v till_o their_o time_n he_o say_v likewise_o unto_o the_o tradition_n which_o be_v of_o the_o apostle_n and_o that_o by_o succession_n of_o pastor_n have_v be_v use_v in_o the_o church_n we_o do_v persuade_v and_o provoke_v those_o that_o speak_v against_o tradition_n he_o write_v as_o much_o more_o in_o the_o three_o chapter_n of_o the_o say_v book_n forasmuch_o say_v he_o as_o it_o be_v to_o tedious_a to_o set_v forth_o in_o one_o book_n the_o successor_n of_o all_o the_o church_n and_o to_o tell_v they_o one_o by_o one_o we_o do●●●●●_n throw_v those_o that_o for_o vain_a glory_n do_v seek_v to_o gather_v disciple_n together_o touch_v they_o contrary_a to_o that_o that_o do_v appertain_v unto_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o which_o we_o do_v show_v to_o they_o by_o the_o say_v tradition_n and_o by_o the_o faith_n that_o have_v be_v teach_v and_o be_v come_v to_o we_o by_o succession_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o great_a and_o ancient_a church_n of_o rome_n the_o which_o be_v found_v by_o the_o two_o glorious_a martyr_n and_o apostle_n saint_n peter_n &_o saint_n paul_n these_o be_v his_o word_n in_o his_o three_o book_n adversus_fw-la haereses_fw-la say_v haereses_fw-la the_o three_o you_o shall_v say_v the_o five_o chapter_n and_o at_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o say_v chapter_n he_o say_v thus_o all_o these_o that_o will_v understand_v the_o truth_n may_v present_o regard_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v manifest_a throughout_o the_o world_n and_o we_o can_v count_v the_o number_n of_o those_o that_o have_v be_v institute_v and_o ordain_v bishop_n in_o the_o church_n and_o their_o successor_n till_o our_o day_n which_o have_v neither_o know_v nor_o teach_v any_o thing_n like_o unto_o the_o fable_n and_o tale_n that_o these_o do_v preach_v unto_o us._n untrue_o us._n if_o you_o say_v so_o you_o say_v it_o without_o cause_n and_o untrue_o not_o without_o cause_n we_o may_v now_o a_o day_n say_v the_o like_a of_o the_o lutheran_n caluiniste_n &_o other_o sect_n of_o our_o time_n after_o this_o he_o do_v set_v forth_o all_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n do_v rome_n if_o the_o pope_n ever_o since_o have_v be_v like_o these_o you_o and_o we_o shall_v not_o have_v need_v to_o strive_v as_o we_o do_v from_o saint_n peter_n unto_o eleutherius_fw-la which_o be_v pope_n in_o his_o time_n and_o he_o do_v affirm_v that_o that_o number_n do_v suffice_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o marcian_n and_o valentinian_n be_v false_a &_o very_a hurtful_a because_o that_o it_o be_v unknown_a or_o at_o the_o least_o not_o receive_v or_o approve_v by_o the_o church_n be_v under_o the_o governance_n of_o any_o of_o th●se_a pope_n then_o with_o great_a reason_n ought_v prescription_n to_o take_v place_n against_o be_v against_o true_a but_o such_o you_o shall_v never_o prove_v we_o to_o be_v a_o new_a doctrine_n which_o have_v be_v unknowen_a this_o 1500._o year_n or_o at_o the_o least_o if_o any_o body_n seek_v to_o publish_v it_o he_o be_v condemn_v as_o a_o false_a perditious_a heretic_n the_o v._o chapter_n you_o must_v remember_v that_o vincentius_n live_v 1000_o year_n ago_o by_o your_o own_o confession_n &_o that_o therefore_o he_o speak_v of_o their_o time_n and_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o ancient_a faith_n that_o then_o be_v whereof_o if_o you_o understand_v he_o we_o say_v as_o he_o say_v and_o be_v more_o willing_a to_o join_v and_o hold_v communion_n with_o that_o church_n of_o christ_n that_o he_o speak_v of_o than_o you_o but_o then_o his_o say_n make_v direct_o against_o you_o for_o neither_o your_o church_n nor_o faith_n be_v in_o his_o day_n we_o grant_v you_o also_o that_o irenaeus_n do_v urge_v succession_n of_o person_n to_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o the_o heretic_n as_o you_o show_v in_o this_o chapter_n out_o of_o he_o but_o withal_o then_o you_o must_v not_o forget_v that_o he_o live_v not_o long_o after_o the_o apostle_n time_n when_o as_o yet_o they_o who_o succession_n he_o allege_v continue_v in_o the_o sincerity_n of_o the_o apostolic_a doctrine_n from_o which_o long_o ago_o your_o roman_a church_n as_o it_o be_v now_o have_v fall_v by_o antichristian_a apostasy_n for_o that_o he_o call_v the_o principal_a succession_n and_o those_o bishop_n only_o he_o teach_v be_v to_o be_v obey_v who_o together_o with_o the_o succession_n of_o their_o bishopricke_n have_v receive_v the_o gift_n of_o truth_n as_o i_o note_v unto_o you_o out_o of_o his_o four_o book_n 43_o chapter_n in_o my_o answer_n to_o your_o first_o chapter_n but_o irenaeus_n no_o where_n prescribe_v that_o his_o example_n of_o urge_v heretic_n to_o see_v their_o folly_n by_o succession_n for_o a_o perpetual_a rule_n to_o follow_v neither_o therein_o do_v he_o prophecy_n that_o for_o 1000_o year_n after_o &_o further_o those_o successive_a line_n of_o bishop_n or_o any_o other_o will_v continue_v so_o in_o possession_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o doctrine_n as_o that_o safe_o always_o they_o may_v be_v join_v unto_o for_o he_o be_v not_o ignorant_a what_o be_v prophesy_v concern_v the_o come_n of_o antichrist_n 2_o thess_n 2._o and_o revel_v 17._o and_o that_o paul_n tell_v to_o the_o pastor_n of_o ephesus_n act._n 20._o that_o after_o his_o departure_n there_o will_v arise_v up_o even_o among_o themselves_o grievous_a wolf_n not_o spare_v the_o flock_n which_o must_v needs_o import_v that_o howsoever_o in_o his_o time_n he_o think_v sometime_o of_o succession_n of_o bishop_n that_o continue_v in_o the_o truth_n that_o yet_o it_o be_v far_o from_o his_o meaning_n to_o prophecy_n that_o so_o it_o will_v be_v always_o you_o reason_v therefore_o in_o this_o point_n as_o one_o that_o to_o prove_v the_o stew_n at_o rome_n now_o to_o be_v pure_a virgin_n shall_v allege_v for_o proof_n thereof_o that_o they_o be_v so_o when_o they_o be_v young_a child_n for_o even_o like_a difference_n and_o odds_n there_o be_v betwixt_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n now_o and_o her_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n and_o that_o that_o be_v in_o the_o day_n &_o time_n that_o you_o and_o the_o author_n that_o you_o allege_v speak_v of_o for_o whereas_o unto_o these_o time_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n &_o her_o bishop_n &_o pastor_n stand_v and_o continue_v in_o the_o truth_n since_o not_o only_o many_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n themselves_o who_o you_o hold_v be_v free_a &_o further_a of_o of_o all_o other_o from_o err_v as_o i_o have_v show_v already_o most_o plain_o fall_v into_o heresy_n but_o also_o all_o your_o romish_a doctrine_n which_o we_o now_o count_v &_o call_v papistical_a be_v divise_v &_o find_v out_o since_o those_o time_n and_o be_v also_o not_o only_o beside_o but_o contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n then_o teach_v &_o receive_v by_o the_o ancient_a church_n of_o rome_n &_o her_o pastor_n as_o ere_o i_o have_v do_v with_o you_o i_o hope_v at_o least_o in_o great_a part_n sufficient_o to_o prove_v it_o shall_v seem_v therefore_o that_o either_o you_o in_o thus_o reason_v be_v very_o childish_a yourself_o or_o else_o you_o think_v you_o have_v to_o deal_v but_o with_o babe_n and_o fool_n in_o that_o because_o irenaeus_n that_o flourish_v within_o two_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n when_o the_o church_n be_v yet_o pure_a and_o undefiled_a in_o comparison_n of_o the_o time_n that_o follow_v can_v and_o do_v urge_v succession_n of_o person_n join_v with_o succession_n of_o truth_n therefore_o you_o may_v that_o live_v 1500._o year_n after_o christ_n and_o more_o you_o must_v first_o prove_v that_o succession_n of_o truth_n be_v unseparable_a from_o personal_a succession_n &_o that_o ever_o since_o and_o now_o also_o the_o bishop_n &_o pastor_n who_o personal_a succession_n you_o brag_v of_o have_v continue_v in_o the_o truth_n as_o well_o as_o they_o do_v who_o name_n he_o recite_v whereof_o neither_o shall_v either_o you_o or_o any_o of_o you_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v as_o long_o as_o the_o world_n stand_v fie_o therefore_o for_o shame_n that_o you_o
by_o bertran_n and_o other_o before_o name_v and_o their_o follower_n as_o we_o have_v make_v it_o most_o evident_a in_o many_o book_n write_v to_o that_o purpose_n &_o namely_o of_o late_a in_o a_o great_a book_n call_v orthodoxus_n consensus_fw-la the_o true_a catholic_a consent_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n &_o ancient_a church_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o of_o all_o the_o controversy_n thereabouts_o print_v at_o tygure_n 1578_o which_o book_n all_o the_o swarm_v of_o you_o will_v never_o be_v sound_o able_a to_o answer_v &_o confute_v as_o long_o as_o you_o live_v and_o therefore_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o this_o chapter_n be_v needle_n wherein_o you_o suppose_v that_o betwixt_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o we_o there_o be_v none_o that_o we_o can_v produce_v of_o our_o judgement_n or_o otherwise_o against_o you_o but_o you_o take_v upon_o you_o to_o prove_v that_o we_o cut_v of_o they_o all_o that_o have_v be_v between_o they_o &_o we_o because_o caluin_n have_v write_v handle_v this_o matter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n that_o he_o do_v find_v that_o they_o of_o old_a time_n have_v change_v the_o fashion_n of_o the_o administration_n thereof_o otherwise_o they_o christ_n institution_n will_v bear_v etc._n etc._n whereupon_o your_o conclusion_n follow_v not_o for_o diverse_a cause_n for_o a_o argument_n from_o one_o to_o all_o hold_v not_o as_o caluin_n have_v do_v so_o ergo_fw-la it_o be_v all_o out_o opinion_n &_o we_o all_o do_v so_o for_o though_o we_o account_v of_o he_o as_o of_o a_o rare_a &_o singular_a minister_n of_o the_o lord_n yet_o we_o do_v not_o bind_v ourselves_o to_o do_v and_o say_v whatsoever_o he_o do_v and_o say_v for_o we_o know_v he_o to_o have_v be_v a_o man_n subject_n to_o error_n and_o infirmity_n for_o all_o his_o gift_n neither_o will_v you_o be_v content_v that_o such_o a_o argument_n shall_v hold_v always_o draw_v from_o any_o one_o of_o your_o great_a &_o most_o famous_a learned_a writer_n to_o press_v all_o the_o rest_n and_o a_o second_o reason_n of_o the_o weakness_n of_o your_o argument_n be_v that_o there_o be_v more_o in_o your_o conclusion_n then_o be_v in_o the_o antecedent_n give_v you_o by_o he_o for_o you_o will_v conclude_v for_o those_o be_v your_o word_n to_o the_o proof_n whereof_o you_o cite_v caluin_n that_o we_o condenne_n &_o cut_v of_o all_o the_o christian_n that_o have_v be_v &_o be_v betwixt_o christ_n his_o apostle_n and_o we_o whereas_o caluin_n speak_v not_o of_o all_o but_o of_o some_o of_o old_a time_n the_o 3_o reason_n caluin_n himself_o give_v you_o in_o the_o even_o in_o the_o word_n set_v down_o by_o you_o he_o show_v plain_o that_o though_o in_o they_o that_o he_o speak_v of_o he_o note_v some_o aberration_n from_o the_o simplicity_n of_o christ_n institution_n yet_o he_o do_v not_o therefore_o cut_v they_o of_o from_o the_o church_n nor_o condenne_v they_o what_o be_v you_o such_o a_o cutter_n that_o you_o straight_o cut_v of_o all_o those_o from_o communion_n with_o you_o in_o who_o you_o can_v just_o find_v any_o fault_n or_o error_n in_o opinion_n or_o practice_v of_o life_n sure_o then_o you_o must_v cut_v of_o most_o of_o your_o best_a friend_n that_o which_o we_o can_v fond_o prove_v to_o be_v a_o fault_n in_o brethren_n either_o ancient_a or_o of_o late_a time_n we_o may_v safe_o note_v tell_v they_o of_o and_o labour_n to_o reform_v &_o yet_o as_o long_o as_o they_o join_v together_o with_o we_o in_o one_o god_n faith_n and_o baptism_n otherwise_o we_o can_v and_o aught_o to_o hold_v peace_n &_o christian_a communion_n with_o they_o or_o else_o where_o can_v there_o at_o any_o time_n be_v any_o true_a concord_n or_o peace_n keep_v in_o the_o church_n for_o some_o difference_n of_o opinion_n &_o usage_n there_o have_v always_o yet_o be_v and_o will_v be_v betwixt_o one_o particular_a church_n and_o another_o and_o betwixt_o some_o member_n of_o the_o true_a church_n or_o other_o you_o need_v not_o therefore_o i_o warrant_v you_o one_o whit_n have_v be_v afraid_a that_o caluin_n &_o his_o fellow_n be_v so_o scrupulous_a that_o they_o will_v not_o join_v in_o fellow_n ship_n with_o some_o such_o as_o he_o speak_v of_o there_o and_o yet_o the_o let_v not_o but_z that_o he_o shall_v counsel_v his_o reader_n to_o prefer_v christ_n own_o simple_a institution_n before_o the_o usage_n of_o they_o or_o any_o other_o differ_v from_o it_o the_o xi_o chapter_n you_o do●_n very_o well_o that_o s._n paul_n do_v compare_v many_o time_n the_o mystical_a body_n of_o the_o church_n unto_o a_o natural_a body_n see_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o head_n unto_o who_o the_o body_n be_v join_v by_o joint_n bone_n &_o sinew_n if_o one_o shall_v then_o demand_n of_o you_o how_o the_o foot_n be_v join_v to_o the_o head_n you_o will_v answer_v i_o by_o the_o leg_n which_o be_v next_o unto_o the_o foot_n and_o if_o i_o ask_v you_o how_o the_o leg_n be_v join_v to_o the_o head_n you_o will_v answer_v by_o the_o joint_n and_o by_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o back_n and_o so_o consequent_o from_o member_n to_o member_n i_o do_v believe_v that_o we_o be_v all_o of_o one_o accord_n 10._o accord_n 1_o cor._n 10._o that_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n be_v at_o hand_n and_o so_o consequent_o that_o we_o be_v the_o low_a most_o part_n of_o the_o body_n so_o that_o 〈◊〉_d the_o foot_n or_o the_o leg_n then_o my_o master_n you_o that_o have_v make_v so_o f●ne_a a●_n anatomy_n of_o the_o mass_n at_o my_o request_n make_v another_o of_o the_o ministry_n of_o your_o congregation_n laughter_n congregation_n you_o be_v a_o very_a pleasant_a man_n be_v like_o that_o can_v thus_o play_v yourself_o a_o fit_a of_o mirth_n and_o when_o you_o have_v do_v dance_n after_o your_o own_o pipe_n &_o it_o seem_v you_o think_v that_o the_o sport_n than_o will_v be_v so_o pleasant_a that_o no_o beholder_n can_v forbear_v laughter_n if_o you_o shall_v see_v such_o another_o as_o apelles_n that_o will_v paint_v a_o man_n and_o that_o he_o have_v draw_v his_o head_n and_o without_o paint_v the_o rest_n of_o his_o body_n he_o have_v set_v his_o foot_n under_o his_o ear_n what_o will_v you_o sa●●_n to_o such_o a_o table_n spectatum_fw-la admissi_fw-la risum_fw-la teneatis_fw-la amici_fw-la will_v you_o not_o think_v that_o he_o be_v a_o simple_a painter_n or_o else_o a_o great_a jester_n even_o so_o do_v you_o deserve_v that_o one_o shall_v laugh_v at_o your_o ministry_n fancy_n ministry_n this_o be_v untrue_a and_o a_o gross_a slander_n for_o we_o hold_v and_o teach_v that_o ever_o since_o christ_n to_o our_o day_n there_o have_v be_v both_o shepherd_n and_o sheep_n join_v with_o we_o in_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n &_o therefore_o you_o laugh_v at_o your_o own_o shadow_n and_o vain_a fancy_n for_o you_o will_v join_v your_o church_n if_o it_o may_v be_v so_o call_v unto_o the_o church_n of_o the_o apostle_n without_o set_v forth_o any_o member_n between_o they_o you_o take_v but_o scant_a measure_n when_o you_o will_v cut_v of_o all_o the_o bishop_n pastor_n and_o doctor_n that_o have_v be_v from_o the_o apostle_n time_n till_o our_o day_n they_o be_v the_o member_n that_o follow_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n this_o may_v well_o be_v call_v a_o new_a religion_n or_o to_o say_v the_o truth_n it_o be_v a_o mere_a presumption_n to_o fly_v without_o wing_n or_o to_o climb_v without_o a_o ladder_n and_o i_o say_v to_o you_o again_o that_o this_o be_v not_o the_o way_n to_o follow_v the_o counsel_n of_o the_o great_a shepherd_n that_o i_o mention_v before_o who_o do_v say_v unto_o we_o that_o if_o we_o will_v not_o miss_v the_o way_n of_o the_o catholic_n we_o ought_v to_o follow_v the_o flock_n of_o those_o sheep_n that_o have_v go_v before_o we_o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o we_o shall_v reckon_v reason_n reckon_v but_o th●s_n in_o truth_n you_o can_v do_v therefore_o you_o be_v not_o the_o catholic_a church_n by_o your_o own_o reason_n by_o succession_n the_o pastor_n that_o have_v succeed_v in_o continuance_n of_o one_o kind_n of_o doctrine_n the_o which_o as_o we_o have_v show_v the_o catholic_a church_n do_v and_o have_v ever_o do_v the_o xi_o chapter_n as_o though_o you_o have_v most_o substantial_o prove_v by_o caluins_n word_n that_o we_o cut_v of_o all_o christian_n betwixt_o the_o apostle_n and_o we_o in_o this_o chapter_n you_o urge_v the_o metaphor_n of_o a_o body_n whereunto_o usual_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v compare_v whereupon_o you_o gather_v that_o as_o there_o be_v a_o orderly_a connexion_n and_o situation_n of_o member_n in_o a_o body_n so_o there_o must_v be_v in_o the_o church_n and_o that_o therefore_o our_o church_n must_v
not_o be_v against_o himself_o ma._n 12._o what_o be_v they_o to_o do_v else_o but_o according_a to_o that_o the_o god_n give_v they_o and_o the_o place_n they_o have_v in_o university_n &_o in_o the_o church_n to_o proceed_v to_o call_v the_o people_n yet_o from_o those_o error_n to_o the_o truth_n when_o fire_n shall_v take_v hold_n of_o a_o city_n or_o the_o enemy_n scale_v the_o wall_n in_o the_o night_n if_o the_o lest_o burgess_n shall_v give_v a_o alarun_a yea_o if_o it_o be_v but_o a_o stranger_n the_o watchman_n sleep_v that_o shall_v give_v warning_n no_o man_n will_v stand_v trifle_v in_o demand_v by_o what_o title_n he_o do_v it_o but_o straight_o he_o will_v run_v to_o the_o water_n and_o to_z the_o wall_n and_o lay_v to_o his_o hand_n to_o prevent_v the_o mischief_n &_o thank_v he_o that_o give_v the_o warning_n and_o yet_o when_o the_o man_n we_o speak_v of_o give_v notice_n of_o a_o great_a danger_n though_o it_o be_v as_o necessary_a to_o listen_v unto_o they_o &_o to_o be_v warn_v by_o they_o as_o the_o salvation_n of_o man_n soul_n be_v yet_o they_o can_v find_v this_o wisdom_n and_o thankfulness_n in_o man_n it_o shall_v seem_v by_o your_o stand_v thus_o precise_o upon_o the_o necessity_n of_o visible_a succession_n &_o ordinary_a imposition_n of_o hand_n in_o they_o the_o god_n shall_v send_v to_o teach_v man_n or_o else_o they_o may_v not_o be_v hear_v that_o either_o you_o have_v not_o red_a or_o else_o that_o you_o great_o dissemble_v your_o knowledge_n that_o god_n have_v use_v the_o ministry_n of_o diverse_a person_n that_o have_v want_v those_o to_o convert_v nation_n to_o lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o church_n &_o to_o do_v very_o much_o good_a for_o ruffinus_n in_o his_o eccl._n hist_o 1._o book_n and_o c._n 10._o &_o theodoret_n in_o his_o 1._o book_n c._n 23._o report_n that_o a_o captive_a maiden_n do_v first_o kindle_v the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n among_o the_o iberians_n who_o be_v the_o mean_n first_o to_o convert_v the_o queen_n the_o queen_n convert_v the_o king_n &_o he_o wtout_fw-fr any_o order_n as_o you_o call_v they_o teach_v his_o people_n the_o christian_n faith_n &_o so_o begin_v the_o church_n there_o it_o be_v also_o write_v by_o ruff._n lib._n 1_o c._n 9_o by_o theodoret_n in_o the_o 22._o c._n of_o his_o say_v book_n by_o nicep_n in_o his_o 8._o book_n c._n 35_o that_o aedesius_n and_o frumentius_n bring_v thither_o be_v ●●yes_n by_o meropius_n a_o philosopher_n and_o there_o take_v and_o preserve_v alive_a when_o he_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o company_n be_v slay_v grow_v after_o into_o good_a credit_n and_o authority_n there_o be_v the_o first_o mean_n of_o the_o sow_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o gospel_n among_o the_o barbarian_n in_o the_o further_a india_n to_o the_o profession_n and_o exercise_n whereof_o especial_o frumentius_n and_o that_o not_o only_o after_o that_o by_o athanasius_n he_o be_v ordain_v there_o bishop_n but_o before_o ever_o by_o any_o he_o be_v ordain_v either_o minister_n or_o bishop_n be_v a_o notable_a &_o effectual_a mean_n both_o to_o excite_v merchant_n that_o come_v thither_o and_o to_o draw_v the_o people_n of_o that_o country_n itself_o moreover_o eusebius_n in_o his_o ecclesiastical_a history_n report_v in_o his_o sixth_o book_n and_o 19_o chapter_n that_o origen_n teach_v public_o before_o he_o have_v ordination_n certain_a bishop_n be_v present_a which_o when_o demetrius_n alexandrinus_n object_v as_o a_o fault_n to_o alexander_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o to_o theoclistus_n bishop_n of_o caesarea_n they_o defend_v themselves_o by_o allege_v diverse_a such_o famous_a example_n as_o namely_o of_o euelpis_n paulinus_n and_o theodorus_n which_o in_o like_a sort_n have_v preach_v without_o the_o ordinary_a ordination_n yea_o read_v nicephorus_n 2_o book_n and_o 25._o chapter_n and_o he_o will_v tell_v you_o that_o under_o constantius_n antony_n the_o eremite_n teach_v at_o alexandria_n and_o that_o under_o valens_n at_o antioch_n aphraatis_fw-la flavianus_n &_o julianus_n be_v then_o but_o monk_n who_o in_o those_o day_n be_v not_o reckon_v among_o clerk_n at_o all_o for_o unto_o gregory_n time_n they_o be_v not_o account_v clerk_n do_v public_o preach_v and_o confute_v heretic_n and_o yet_o these_o example_n i_o allege_v not_o that_o i_o will_v be_v author_n to_o any_o when_o a_o ordinary_a call_n may_v be_v have_v to_o despise_v that_o and_o to_o take_v upon_o they_o that_o function_n of_o the_o ministry_n without_o that_o lawful_a ordinary_a calling_n for_o that_o be_v to_o disturb_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o open_v a_o gap_n to_o much_o disorder_n and_o inconvenience_n but_o to_o this_o end_n to_o make_v it_o appear_v that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n in_o former_a ancient_a time_n have_v not_o so_o precise_o and_o curious_o stand_v upon_o these_o point_n of_o visible_a succession_n and_o ordination_n for_o the_o justify_n of_o one_o preach_v the_o gospel_n at_o all_o time_n and_o in_o all_o place_n as_o you_o do_v for_o doubtless_o there_o have_v be_v time_n and_o yet_o may_v be_v as_o after_o that_o great_a apostasy_n speak_v of_o 2._o thes_n 2._o &_o in_o other_o great_a ruin_n of_o the_o church_n when_o it_o have_v and_o may_v please_v the_o lord_n to_o call_v man_n extraordinary_o to_o this_o work_n without_o either_o immediate_a local_a or_o personal_a succession_n go_v before_o who_o as_o long_o as_o they_o preach_v but_o the_o truth_n and_o otherwise_o the_o time_n be_v so_o corrupt_a that_o of_o they_o that_o have_v authority_n ordinary_o to_o call_v man_n to_o that_o business_n such_o rather_o shall_v be_v shut_v out_o general_o then_o let_v into_o the_o ministry_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v hear_v and_o listen_v unto_o as_o such_o who_o the_o lord_n of_o his_o mercy_n have_v extraordinary_o call_v himself_o the_o xiiii_o chapter_n caluin_n do_v allege_v to_o we_o that_o the_o apostle_n do_v say_v that_o no_o body_n ought_v to_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o high_a priesthood_n except_o he_o be_v call_v to_o it_o as_o aaron_n be_v mean_v by_o that_o to_o conclude_v that_o of_o our_o own_o authority_n we_o have_v usurp_v the_o dignity_n of_o priesthood_n purpose_n priesthood_n and_o ●et_o to_o no_o purpose_n we_o have_v answer_v he_o at_o large_a of_o our_o vocation_n by_o the_o succession_n of_o pastor_n join_v with_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n i_o do_v demand_n of_o he_o or_o of_o his_o if_o they_o can_v make_v any_o true_a answer_n to_o the_o like_a objection_n you_o do_v lie_v to_o our_o charge_n the_o all_o life_n of_o our_o pope_n and_o bishop_n and_o the_o naughtiness_n that_o you_o pretend_v to_o find_v in_o our_o preacher_n but_o all_o those_o invective_n serve_v to_o no_o other_o purpose_n but_o to_o show_v how_o you_o keep_v scoff_v keep_v nay_o you_o shall_v have_v the_o bell_n both_o for_o that_o &_o for_o profane_a ier_n &_o scoff_v a_o learned_a school_n of_o rail_v the_o which_o pre-eminence_n we_o do_v yield_v to_o you_o without_o any_o debate_n or_o process_n for_o you_o may_v attribute_v that_o unto_o yourselves_o as_o your_o own_o by_o right_n instead_o of_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n which_o you_o want_v but_o in_o one_o thing_n to_o my_o judgement_n you_o be_v great_o oversee_v and_o that_o be_v this_o you_o this_o when_o you_o observe_v this_o law_n yourselves_o we_o will_v learn_v of_o you_o why_o do_v you_o not_o fill_v both_o side_n of_o your_o book_n in_o the_o one_o you_o set_v forth_o at_o large_a without_o omit_v any_o point_n of_o their_o ill_a do_n all_o the_o naughty_a life_n of_o our_o pastor_n and_o bishop_n but_o the_o other_o side_n of_o the_o leaf_n be_v empty_a you_o shall_v have_v write_v on_o they_o the_o holy_a life_n of_o your_o minister_n succeed_v one_o after_o a_o other_o this_o thousand_o and_o five_o hundred_o year_n when_o the_o pope_n bonifacius_n &_o gregorius_n do_v govern_v ill_o their_o seat_n at_o rome_n 4._o rome_n i_o have_v sufficient_o answer_v this_o cap._n 4._o which_o be_v the_o good_a and_o holy_a minister_n that_o do_v their_o duty_n at_o geneva_n when_o our_o doctor_n do_v preach_v against_o god_n in_o time_n past_a in_o what_o part_n or_o under_o what_o sign_n be_v your_o minister_n lodge_v that_o do_v then_o preach_v the_o pure_a word_n of_o the_o lord_n persecuter_n lord_n reason_v like_o yourselves_o as_o though_o the_o apostle_n never_o lawful_o hide_v themselves_o from_o the_o fury_n of_o the_o persecuter_n if_o they_o do_v hide_v themselves_o they_o do_v not_o follow_v the_o pure_a word_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o which_o you_o say_v be_v necessary_a to_o know_v the_o true_a &_o faithful_a believer_n for_o christ_n do_v say_v mat._n 10._o that_o he_o that_o shall_v deny_v he_o before_o man_n he_o
yet_o without_o fruit_n to_o the_o receiver_n the_o benefit_n indeed_o arise_v by_o his_o presence_n only_o to_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o communicant_a the_o matter_n be_v not_o of_o so_o great_a moment_n &_o weight_n as_o that_o either_o you_o shall_v need_v to_o make_v such_o a_o do_v about_o or_o that_o the_o maintainer_n thereof_o shall_v need_v to_o strive_v so_o eager_o for_o which_o i_o hope_v god_n will_v in_o his_o good_a time_n reveal_v unto_o they_o and_o so_o make_v they_o to_o give_v over_o their_o contention_n and_o to_o grow_v into_o unity_n in_o this_o matter_n with_o their_o brethren_n i_o can_v but_o tell_v you_o yet_o before_o i_o end_v this_o chapter_n that_o you_o very_o great_o belie_v we_o when_o you_o write_v that_o we_o have_v give_v absolute_a sentence_n that_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v err_v even_o from_o the_o apostle_n time_n unto_o this_o present_a in_o pray_v to_o god_n for_o the_o soul_n of_o those_o that_o be_v dead_a constitute_v in_o a_o three_o place_n call_v purgatory_n for_o both_o your_o devyse_n of_o purgatory_n and_o of_o pray_v to_o god_n for_o the_o relief_n of_o soul_n there_o we_o say_v and_o constant_o defend_v to_o be_v but_o popish_a devise_n find_v out_o and_o ground_v but_o upon_o humane_a reason_n dream_n and_o fond_a vision_n and_o apparition_n and_o neither_o teach_v by_o the_o apostle_n nor_o any_o true_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n for_o three_o hundred_o year_n at_o least_o after_o christ_n tertullian_n be_v the_o first_o and_o that_o in_o a_o book_n write_v by_o he_o when_o he_o be_v a_o montanist_n that_o make_v any_o mention_n towards_o the_o allowance_n of_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o until_o the_o florentine_a council_n the_o greek_a church_n can_v not_o be_v bring_v to_o join_v with_o you_o in_o this_o doctrine_n of_o you_o as_o you_o know_v well_o enough_o and_o therefore_o it_o have_v be_v more_o for_o your_o credit_n and_o honesty_n to_o have_v spare_v this_o your_o merry_a conceit_n and_o pleasant_a devise_n of_o wish_v we_o though_o we_o refuse_v your_o purgatory_n to_o provide_v a_o third_o place_n for_o they_o who_o our_o contention_n make_v constant_a on_o neither_o side_n for_o either_o if_o you_o have_v be_v wise_a you_o will_v have_v utter_v that_o your_o conceit_n with_o more_o truth_n in_o your_o first_o entrance_n into_o it_o or_o else_o you_o will_v have_v let_v it_o alone_o for_o altogether_o the_o xxix_o chapter_n it_o do_v appear_v well_o by_o that_o that_o i_o have_v say_v how_o the_o assurance_n of_o your_o vocation_n to_o the_o ministry_n be_v but_o found_v upon_o sand_n for_o asmuch_o as_o you_o do_v seek_v particulerlie_o a_o contrary_a meaning_n every_o one_o to_o his_o own_o particular_a sense_n be_v not_o this_o the_o way_n that_o a_o extraordinary_a minister_n send_v from_o god_n shall_v use_v to_o confirm_v his_o doctrine_n for_o this_o have_v be_v the_o custom_n of_o all_o old_a heretic_n as_o i_o have_v already_o say_v there_o be_v a_o very_a great_a difference_n between_o set_v forth_o the_o scripture_n to_o refourme_v one_o religion_n and_o to_o reform_v one_o condition_n for_o when_o there_o be_v any_o question_n of_o the_o refourm_v of_o one_o manner_n sense_n manner_n good_a stuff_n by_o this_o divinity_n than_o man_n may_v by_o the_o warrant_n of_o the_o apostle_n take_v the_o scripture_n in_o diverse_a and_o sundry_a sense_n there_o be_v no_o need_n to_o regard_v whether_o the_o doctrine_n be_v new_a or_o old_a for_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v let_v every_o man_n take_v it_o to_o his_o own_o sense_n but_o when_o it_o be_v to_o be_v talk_v of_o as_o touch_v one_o faith_n the_o catholic_a ought_v great_o to_o beware_v of_o be_v of_o and_o such_o be_v all_o they_o whosoever_o make_v they_o that_o will_v not_o stand_v with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o scripture_n of_o wh●ch_a kind_n your_o popish_a interpretation_n be_v singular_a interpretation_n and_o to_o hold_v they_o as_o very_o suspicious_a 〈◊〉_d suspicious_a if_o this_o rule_n be_v receive_v and_o follow_v your_o popery_n will_v be_v find_v new_a devise_n and_o will_v you_o will_v you_o you_o shall_v become_v all_o one_o with_o 〈◊〉_d he_o ought_v to_o follow_v the_o sentence_n that_o be_v hold_v and_o teach_v by_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n without_o make_v any_o account_n of_o all_o these_o new_a devise_n for_o even_o as_o when_o one_o will_v repair_v a_o old_a house_n he_o dare_v commit_v it_o to_o any_o mason_n although_o his_o cunning_n be_v but_o small_a but_o if_o the_o foundation_n must_v be_v touch_v he_o will_v seek_v the_o best_a master_n he_o can_v find_v even_o so_o when_o one_o will_v correct_v i_o for_o my_o evil_a life_n or_o condition_n although_o that_o it_o be_v so_o that_o he_o that_o seek_v to_o reform_v i_o be_v not_o of_o the_o wise_a of_o the_o world_n and_o that_o he_o allege_v to_o i_o some_o place_n or_o figure_n of_o the_o scripture_n not_o altogether_o to_o the_o purpose_n yet_o all_o this_o aught_o to_o turn_v to_o i_o to_o one_o effect_n for_o i_o know_v his_o meaning_n although_o he_o can_v well_o express_v it_o the_o which_o be_v to_o have_v i_o change_v my_o naughty_a life_n and_o to_o leave_v my_o ill_a condition_n ground_v condition_n but_o all_o the_o pack_n of_o you_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v ●opery_n to_o be_v thus_o ground_v but_o when_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o touch_v my_o faith_n and_o to_o persuade_v i_o from_o that_o that_o all_o my_o ancetour_n do_v ever_o hold_v from_o that_o that_o the_o catholic_a church_n derive_v from_o the_o apostle_n have_v hold_v and_o do_v hold_v and_o from_o that_o that_o both_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o general_a counsel_n and_o all_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n teach_v and_o affirm_v in_o the_o repair_n of_o this_o foundation_n i_o ought_v to_o trust_v none_o but_o even_o the_o very_o best_a i_o mean_v not_o one_o or_o two_o but_o all_o these_o that_o i_o have_v name_v and_o now_o if_o you_o say_v that_o they_o may_v all_o err_v i_o pray_v remember_v the_o old_a proverb_n that_o say_v he_o be_v a_o fool_n that_o think_v that_o he_o only_o be_v wise_a and_o all_o the_o other_o fool_n &_o that_o it_o be_v more_o agreeable_a to_o reason_n that_o one_o only_o shall_v err_v than_o one_o great_a multitude_n for_o as_o they_o say_v common_o two_o eye_n see_v more_o than_o one_o and_o four_o more_o than_o two_o the_o xxix_o chapter_n what_o you_o have_v gain_v by_o all_o you_o have_v hitherto_o write_v to_o disprove_v either_o our_o vocation_n or_o religion_n for_o all_o your_o great_a brag_n here_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o chapter_n by_o weigh_v together_o your_o objection_n and_o my_o answer_n now_o let_v the_o indifferent_a reader_n judge_v unto_o who_o i_o doubt_v not_o your_o brag_n notwithstanding_o it_o shall_v and_o will_v well_o appear_v that_o both_o may_v be_v build_v upon_o the_o rock_n for_o any_o thing_n you_o have_v yet_o say_v the_o only_a new_a thing_n that_o you_o set_v down_o in_o this_o chapter_n be_v this_o that_o the_o former_a variety_n among_o they_o that_o allege_v scripture_n consider_v you_o allow_v well_o that_o one_o shall_v listen_v to_o mean_a man_n allege_v scripture_n though_o not_o very_o apt_o to_o reform_v manner_n withal_o but_o when_o they_o be_v allege_v to_o teach_v faith_n than_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o the_o catholic_a man_n trust_v none_o but_o the_o best_a and_o those_o allege_v they_o according_a to_o the_o general_a counsel_n and_o all_o ancient_a doctor_n and_o therefore_o you_o write_v that_o the_o catholic_n must_v take_v heed_n of_o singular_a interpretation_n that_o he_o must_v follow_v the_o sentence_n hold_v &_o teach_v by_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n &_o not_o suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v persuade_v from_o that_o faith_n that_o all_o his_o ancetour_n do_v ever_o hold_v the_o catholic_a church_n have_v ever_o hold_v the_o scripture_n general_a counsel_n and_o all_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n do_v teach_v in_o which_o case_n if_o one_o shall_v take_v upon_o he_o to_o be_v wise_a than_o all_o these_o you_o will_v have_v he_o according_a to_o the_o proverb_n account_v a_o fool_n that_o think_v himself_o only_o wise_a and_o all_o other_o fool_n because_o in_o reason_n it_o be_v more_o likely_a that_o one_o shall_v err_v than_o all_o these_o etc._n etc._n be_v it_o that_o all_o this_o be_v very_o true_a what_o have_v you_o win_v hereby_o against_o we_o for_o neither_o shall_v you_o ever_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v as_o we_o have_v often_o tell_v you_o that_o your_o religion_n be_v that_o ancient_a catholic_a religion_n nor_o your_o church_n to_o be_v the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n nor_o that_o your_o church_n have_v either_o the_o scripture_n general_a counsel_n or_o
father_n as_o you_o herein_o take_v it_o for_o grant_v on_o your_o side_n for_o in_o truth_n you_o have_v none_o of_o these_o on_o your_o side_n but_o the_o only_a ground_n of_o your_o religion_n be_v your_o own_o private_a and_o singular_a interpretation_n &_o tradition_n of_o man_n without_o warrant_n either_o from_o the_o scripture_n indeed_o sound_o understand_v or_o from_o general_a counsel_n or_o ancient_a father_n that_o be_v worthy_a to_o be_v of_o credit_n in_o god_n church_n for_o as_o we_o have_v make_v appear_v in_o infinite_a discourse_n against_o you_o all_o these_o be_v far_o more_o strong_a on_o our_o side_n then_o with_o you_o and_o therefore_o you_o rather_o be_v the_o fool_n that_o seem_v wise_a they_o all_o these_o in_o your_o own_o conceit_n and_o so_o labour_v to_o draw_v we_o from_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a faith_n and_o christ_n true_a church_n by_o your_o corrupt_a gloss_n &_o allegation_n of_o these_o &_o by_o your_o vain_a &_o uncertain_a tradition_n of_o mortal_a man_n whereof_o let_v the_o reader_n take_v for_o a_o taste_n these_o few_o proof_n among_o infinite_a other_o use_v by_o us._n the_o scripture_n with_o we_o teach_v justification_n free_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n without_o work_n rom._n 3.24.25_o ephes_n 2.8.9_o and_o you_o condenne_v they_o as_o heretic_n that_o teach_v so_o the_o scripture_n with_o we_o teach_v that_o christ_n offering_n himself_o once_o for_o all_o have_v make_v perfect_a all_o they_o that_o be_v sanctify_v heb._n 10.14_o and_o you_o contrary_o teach_v that_o they_o must_v be_v perfect_v by_o the_o iteration_n of_o his_o sacrifice_n in_o your_o mass_n &_o by_o a_o number_n of_o other_o thing_n do_v by_o themselves_o and_o other_o for_o they_o the_o scripture_n with_o we_o teach_v that_o christ_n be_v ascend_v into_o heaven_n coloss_n 3.1_o act._n 1.9_o etc._n etc._n and_o that_o the_o heaven_n must_v contain_v he_o until_o the_o restitution_n of_o all_o thing_n act._n 3.21_o and_o you_o contrary_o will_v have_v he_o as_o oft_o as_o you_o consecrate_v to_o come_v down_o to_o hide_v himself_o under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n the_o scripture_n with_o we_o say_v concern_v the_o cup_n in_o the_o sacrament_n to_o all_o christian_n right_o prepare_v drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o matth._n 26.22_o and_o you_o say_v it_o be_v heresy_n to_o hold_v that_o the_o lay_v people_n must_v drink_v thereof_o to_o proceed_v a_o little_a further_o the_o same_o scripture_n in_o the_o 2._o commandment_n exod._n 20.4_o forbid_v as_o we_o do_v both_o the_o make_n and_o worship_v of_o image_n to_o represent_v god_n the_o father_n the_o son_n or_o the_o holy_a ghost_n withal_o and_o you_o allow_v both_o these_o the_o scripture_n prefer_v as_o we_o do_v the_o speak_v of_o five_o word_n in_o the_o church_n that_o may_v be_v understand_v before_o ten_o thousand_o in_o a_o tongue_n not_o understand_v 1._o cor._n 14.19_o and_o your_o church_n as_o it_o appear_v in_o have_v all_o your_o service_n in_o lat_fw-la in_fw-la prefer_v five_a word_n speak_v there_o i●_n a_o unknowen_a tongue_n before_o ten_o thousand_o speak_v in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n of_o the_o people_n to_o their_o edification_n last_o the_o scripture_n as_o we_o do_v account_v marriage_n honourable_a among_o all_o man_n in_o all_o estate_n and_o the_o marriage_n bed_n undefiled_a heb._n 13.4_o insomuch_o that_o they_o advouch_v the_o forbid_a of_o it_o though_o under_o pretence_n of_o holiness_n to_o be_v a_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n 1._o tim._n 4.1.2.3_o &_o yet_o you_o condemn_v it_o in_o your_o priest_n as_o a_o filthy_a life_n in_o like_a manner_n be_v there_o a_o plain_a contrariety_n betwixt_o your_o religion_n and_o the_o decree_n of_o ancient_a and_o general_a counsel_n in_o my_o answer_n to_o your_o 17._o chapter_n i_o have_v show_v you_o already_o that_o the_o ancient_a famous_a first_o general_a council_n of_o nice_a in_o the_o 6._o canon_n thereof_o be_v direct_o against_o that_o pre-eminence_n that_o now_o you_o give_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n over_o all_o church_n there_o also_o you_o have_v hear_v the_o council_n of_o gangra_n pronounce_v you_o accurse_v for_o your_o doctrine_n against_o the_o marriage_n of_o minister_n i_o have_v also_o show_v you_o before_o that_o the_o 6._o general_a council_n hold_v at_o constantinople_n in_o the_o 36._o decree_n have_v flat_o determine_v against_o the_o principal_a article_n of_o your_o religion_n your_o pope_n supremacy_n in_o determine_v that_o the_o bishop_n there_o shall_v have_v equal_a privilege_n with_o your_o pope_n or_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o counsel_n also_o of_o constance_n and_o basil_n against_o your_o receive_a opinion_n now_o prefer_v the_o authority_n of_o a_o general_a council_n before_o the_o authority_n of_o your_o pope_n and_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o charles_n the_o great_a there_o be_v a_o council_n call_v at_o franckeforde_n whereat_o the_o bishop_n of_o france_n germany_n &_o italy_n be_v assemble_v about_o the_o year_n as_o regin_v write_v in_o his_o 2_o book_n 794_o where_o the_o make_n and_o worship_v of_o image_n allow_v of_o by_o the_o false_a synod_n of_o the_o greek_n as_o he_o term_v it_o be_v condemn_v and_o hickma●e_a archbishop_n of_o rheame_n write_v against_o another_o bishop_n of_o that_o 〈◊〉_d chap._n 20._o somewhat_o about_o these_o time_n call_v this_o a_o general_a council_n call_v by_o the_o will_n &_o commandment_n of_o the_o pope_n &_o emperor_n charles_n &_o witness_v that_o not_o only_o there_o the_o false_a synod_n of_o the_o greek_n that_o make_v for_o image_n be_v confute_v &_o reject_v but_o also_o a_o great_a book_n make_v thereof_o then_o send_v to_o rome_n as_o for_o father_n and_o ancient_a doctor_n i_o have_v plentiful_o show_v to_o be_v against_o you_o already_o for_o the_o sufficiency_n &_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n chap._n 3._o &_o 5._o against_o your_o real_a presence_n chap._n 11._o &_o against_o your_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n &_o other_o point_n of_o your_o religion_n chap._n 16._o and_o it_o be_v as_o easy_a a_o matter_n to_o show_v they_o so_o to_o be_v against_o you_o &_o with_o we_o in_o almost_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o point_n in_o controversy_n betwixt_o us._n at_o least_o this_o most_o confident_o i_o do_v advouch_v that_o for_o 600._o year_n you_o shall_v never_o prove_v they_o all_o nor_o half_a to_o be_v on_o your_o side_n in_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o question_n betwixt_o you_o and_o we_o and_o therefore_o you_o do_v but_o too_o shameful_o deceive_v the_o simple_a people_n in_o this_o case_n with_o a_o show_n &_o brag_v of_o that_o with_o you_o be_v of_o all_o other_o further_a from_o the_o xxx_o chapter_n our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v approve_v his_o vocation_n after_o another_o sort_n than_o you_o do_v you_o 12._o you_o but_o in_o another_o place_n you_o know_v he_o say_v that_o the_o word_n that_o he_o have_v speak_v shall_v judge_v they_o at_o the_o last_o day_n john_n 12._o search_v say_v 5._o say_v joh._n 5._o he_o the_o scripture_n for_o they_o hear_v witness_n of_o i_o he_o do_v not_o say_v that_o they_o be_v judge_n as_o you_o say_v for_o you_o will_v have_v none_o other_o arbitrator_n but_o the_o word_n of_o god_n you_o know_v that_o they_o be_v two_o different_a thing_n to_o bear_v witness_n and_o to_o be_v a_o judge_n and_o yet_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n do_v contain_v not_o only_o the_o verity_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n but_o therewithal_o the_o very_a sufficient_a probation_n of_o his_o person_n to_o teach_v we_o the_o true_a word_n of_o god_n &_o to_o overthrow_v &_o destroy_v the_o whole_a kingdom_n of_o satan_n as_o it_o be_v plain_o see_v by_o those_o that_o listen_v to_o look_v upon_o the_o oracle_n of_o the_o old_a patriarch_n &_o prophet_n it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o three_o of_o gen._n that_o god_n say_v unto_o the_o woman_n that_o her_o seed_n shall_v break_v down_o the_o serpent_n head_n and_o likewise_o in_o the_o say_v 24._o say_v gen._n cap._n 12.15.19.22_o &_o 24._o book_n there_o be_v mention_v make_v of_o this_o divine_a seed_n of_o abraham_n &_o in_o the_o 15._o &_o 53._o chapter_n of_o esay_n &_o in_o the_o 2._o psalm_n david_n do_v talk_v of_o it_o and_o in_o like_a manner_n daniel_n moses_n &_o aaron_n withal_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o prophet_n in_o their_o sacrifice_n have_v very_o perfect_o paint_v the_o come_n &_o passion_n of_o our_o saviour_n moses_n leave_v write_v in_o the_o prophecy_n of_o jacob_n that_o the_o messiah_n shall_v come_v when_o the_o royal_a sceptre_n and_o the_o administration_n of_o it_o shall_v be_v take_v from_o the_o line_n of_o juda_n daniel_n be_v not_o content_a to_o say_v as_o the_o rest_n that_o he_o shall_v come_v here_o come_v there_o
a_o answer_n to_o master_n john_n de_fw-fr albines_n notable_a discourse_n against_o heresy_n as_o his_o friend_n call_v his_o book_n compile_v by_o thomas_n spark_n pastor_n of_o blechley_n in_o the_o county_n of_o buck._n and_o i_o hear_v a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n say_v come_v out_o of_o she_o my_o people_n that_o you_o be_v not_o partaker_n of_o her_o sin_n and_o that_o you_o receive_v not_o of_o her_o plague_n revelat._n 18_o vers_fw-la 4._o put_v yourselves_o in_o array_n against_o babylon_n round_o about_o all_o you_o that_o bend_v the_o bow_n shoot_v at_o she_o spare_v no_o arrow_n for_o she_o have_v sin_v against_o the_o lord_n jerem._n 50._o vers_fw-la 14._o academia_n oxoniensis_fw-la sapientiae_fw-la et_fw-la felicitatis_fw-la print_a at_o oxford_n by_o joseph_n barnes_n printer_n to_o the_o university_n 1591._o to_o the_o right_n honourable_a arthure_n lord_n grey_z of_o wilton_n knight_n of_o the_o most_o honourable_a order_n of_o the_o garter_n his_o especial_a good_a lord_n and_o patron_n thomas_n spark_n wish_v all_o good_a perseverance_n in_o christian_a courage_n and_o constancy_n in_o the_o profession_n and_o furtherance_n of_o god_n sincere_a truth_n with_o all_o other_o ornament_n of_o true_a nobility_n to_o god_n glory_n our_o comfort_n and_o his_o own_o heart_n good_a contentation_n now_o and_o ever_o although_o right_o honourable_a when_o i_o have_v first_o peruse_v this_o treatise_n of_o john_n de_fw-fr albine_n i_o find_v it_o through_o out_o a_o most_o bitter_a invective_n &_o a_o malicious_a declamation_n write_v only_o of_o purpose_n to_o deface_v &_o disgrace_v among_o the_o simple_a both_o our_o religion_n &_o the_o minister_n &_o professor_n thereof_o yet_o find_v withal_o as_o i_o do_v &_o as_o any_o indifferent_a man_n that_o read_v it_o shall_v that_o neither_o for_o matter_n nor_o manner_n of_o writing_n there_o be_v any_o new_a thing_n of_o any_o importance_n in_o it_o which_o have_v not_o be_v before_o ever_o this_o discourse_n of_o his_o see_v the_o light_n often_o &_o that_o far_o more_o substantial_o urge_v by_o some_o other_o of_o that_o side_n &_o therefore_o which_o have_v not_o also_o heretofore_o be_v as_o often_o full_o &_o effectual_o answer_v by_o some_o or_o other_o of_o we_o i_o not_o only_o judge_v this_o to_o be_v the_o reason_n when_o it_o have_v now_o be_v among_o we_o in_o english_a these_o 16._o or_o 17._o year_n none_o hitherto_o have_v vouchsafe_v it_o any_o further_a particular_a answer_n but_o also_o though_o urge_v as_o your_o honour_n know_v to_o frame_v unto_o it_o a_o special_a &_o direct_a answer_n i_o can_v yet_o hardly_o be_v bring_v to_o think_v it_o necessary_a so_o base_o i_o esteem_v of_o it_o to_o aford_v it_o any_o other_o answer_n then_o either_o a_o few_o marginal_a note_n that_o when_o i_o first_o read_v it_o i_o bestow_v upon_o it_o or_o from_o point_n to_o point_n as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o table_n to_o have_v show_v the_o reader_n where_o and_o by_o who_o he_o may_v read_v the_o same_o thing_n long_o ago_o &_o often_o object_v on_o the_o one_o side_n &_o answer_v by_o the_o other_o which_o may_v have_v be_v in_o one_o sheet_n of_o paper_n very_o well_o dispatch_v howbeit_o in_o the_o end_n call_v to_o mind_n what_o your_o lordship_n tell_v i_o concern_v the_o opinion_n that_o our_o poor_a seduce_a countryman_n seem_v secret_o to_o have_v among_o themselves_o of_o it_o as_o you_o learn_v by_o one_o of_o their_o own_o speech_n have_v thereof_o unto_o yourself_o in_o acquaint_v you_o first_o with_o the_o book_n and_o mark_v how_o not_o only_o by_o publish_v it_o in_o english_a but_o also_o by_o entitle_v it_o both_o in_o the_o forehead_n &_o over_o every_o leaf_n a_o notable_a discourse_n against_o heresy_n they_o themselves_o have_v plain_o show_v that_o they_o have_v it_o in_o no_o base_a account_n &_o find_v it_o also_o since_o to_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o a_o certain_a learned_a man_n of_o ancient_a and_o long_a experience_n even_o of_o our_o own_o side_n now_o this_o last_o year_n publish_v in_o print_n that_o the_o have_v of_o this_o very_a book_n so_o long_o in_o secret_a among_o they_o unanswered_a have_v be_v one_o great_a cause_n of_o the_o apostasy_n of_o so_o many_o young_a man_n as_o of_o late_a year_n in_o this_o our_o country_n have_v revolt_v from_o the_o truth_n to_o popery_n at_o the_o last_o i_o resolve_v with_o myself_o though_o i_o know_v that_o when_o i_o have_v do_v what_o i_o can_v herein_o that_o i_o shall_v be_v find_v to_o have_v say_v little_a or_o nothing_o not_o say_v &_o write_v aswell_o before_o by_o some_o one_o or_o other_o of_o our_o side_n that_o yet_o your_o lordship_n request_n make_v unto_o i_o to_o answer_v it_o as_o full_o and_o direct_o as_o i_o can_v when_o you_o first_o show_v i_o the_o book_n &_o how_o you_o come_v by_o it_o be_v &_o be_v such_o as_o that_o both_o of_o duty_n to_o yourself_o particular_o for_o sundry_a cause_n &_o to_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n general_o for_o that_o by_o this_o mean_v many_o may_v see_v together_o a_o answer_n to_o that_o which_o otherwise_o in_o great_a part_n either_o they_o may_v chance_v never_o to_o hit_v of_o in_o any_o other_o writer_n of_o we_o or_o else_o be_v drive_v to_o search_v more_o &_o those_o further_a than_o it_o be_v likely_a they_o will_v or_o can_v i_o be_v bind_v to_o satisfy_v in_o as_o good_a sort_n as_o any_o way_n convenient_o i_o can_v have_v therefore_o encouradgement_n by_o these_o reason_n to_o take_v it_o in_o hand_n &_o have_v now_o by_o god_n grace_n finish_v it_o in_o manner_n as_o you_o see_v i_o present_v the_o same_o unto_o your_o honour_n as_o a_o undoubted_a token_n of_o my_o dutiful_a affection_n towards_o you_o beseech_v you_o not_o only_o to_o take_v the_o pain_n as_o your_o leisure_n serve_v you_o to_o peruse_v it_o over_o yourself_o but_o also_o desyre_v you_o to_o be_v unto_o it_o such_o a_o patron_n as_o that_o it_o come_v abroad_o thus_o by_o your_o provocation_n it_o may_v have_v your_o best_a protection_n and_o countenance_n to_o pass_v up_o and_o down_o open_o and_o bold_o both_o in_o the_o view_n of_o friend_n and_o foe_n unto_o it_o there_o be_v prefix_v before_o john_n de_fw-fr albines_n book_n which_o your_o honour_n deliver_v i_o a_o long_a preface_n to_o the_o reader_n make_v as_o it_o shall_v seem_v by_o the_o publisher_n thereof_o in_o english_a and_o there_o be_v annex_v unto_o it_o in_o the_o late_a end_n a_o offer_n of_o a_o catholic_a as_o he_o be_v there_o term_v to_o a_o learned_a protestant_n consist_v of_o two_o and_o twenty_o demand_n and_o six_o sign_n of_o false_a prophet_n heretic_n and_o schismatics_n the_o preface_n i_o have_v answer_v and_o the_o answer_n thereunto_o i_o have_v place_v next_o unto_o my_o answer_n unto_o albines_n book_n itself_o somewhat_o also_o i_o have_v annex_v that_o answer_n of_o i_o to_o his_o book_n finish_v in_o the_o latter_a end_n to_o show_v the_o vanity_n and_o childishness_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o the_o author_n have_v utter_v in_o the_o application_n of_o those_o six_o sign_n to_o we_o but_o to_o that_o which_o he_o have_v write_v concern_v those_o two_o and_o twenty_o demand_n i_o have_v say_v nothing_o and_o indeed_o because_o otherwise_o the_o book_n be_v grow_v far_o great_a than_o i_o imagine_v at_o the_o first_o it_o will_v i_o have_v not_o at_o all_o insert_v that_o offer_n nor_o any_o part_n thereof_o the_o reason_n of_o my_o not_o meddle_v at_o all_o with_o those_o two_o and_o twenty_o demand_n and_o not_o trouble_v this_o my_o book_n at_o all_o with_o any_o part_n of_o that_o offer_n be_v that_o doctor_n fulke_n long_o ago_o have_v answer_v those_o demand_n and_o that_o also_o now_o of_o late_a master_n crowley_n have_v at_o large_a answer_v both_o they_o and_o that_o which_o be_v add_v concern_v those_o sign_n doctor_n fulke_n answer_v thereunto_o may_v be_v have_v under_o the_o title_n of_o a_o answer_n of_o a_o christian_a protestant_n to_o the_o proud_a challenge_n of_o a_o popish_a catholic_a and_o it_o be_v prefix_v common_o before_o his_o book_n write_v in_o confutation_n of_o allens_n of_o purgatory_n indeed_o concern_v the_o six_o sign_n he_o say_v nothing_o not_o because_o of_o any_o great_a matter_n in_o they_o then_o in_o the_o rest_n but_o because_o at_o the_o first_o they_o be_v not_o publish_v with_o the_o other_o the_o demand_n though_o he_o have_v answer_v short_o according_a to_o his_o manner_n yet_o so_o sharp_o and_o effectual_o he_o have_v do_v it_o that_o if_o the_o challenger_n be_v a_o man_n of_o his_o word_n he_o continue_v not_o long_o after_o a_o popish_a catholic_a master_n crowleys_n answer_v to_o the_o whole_a offer_n word_n for_o word_n as_o it_o be_v annex_v
their_o just_a demerit_n excommunicate_v and_o depose_v in_o africa_n cyprian_n write_v unto_o they_o both_o to_o cornelius_n in_o his_o first_o book_n of_o epistle_n epistle_n 3._o and_o to_o stephanus_n in_o his_o second_o book_n and_o first_o epistle_n wherein_o earnest_o he_o reprove_v they_o for_o so_o intermeddle_v in_o his_o jurisdiction_n &_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o other_o his_o colleague_n in_o africa_n show_v they_o that_o they_o ought_v not_o so_o to_o do_v for_o they_o in_o africa_n have_v as_o full_a pishoply_n authority_n as_o they_o at_o rome_n and_o therefore_o be_v both_o able_a and_o the_o fit_a to_o hear_v and_o determine_v such_o case_n as_o fell_v out_o among_o themselves_o but_o see_v for_o all_o this_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n still_o be_v too_o busy_a in_o meddle_v further_o than_o they_o shall_v after_o this_o in_o the_o counsel_n of_o nice_a cannon_n 6._o their_o authority_n and_o the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n be_v make_v equal_a about_o the_o year_n 320._o and_o yet_o the_o better_a to_o stay_v and_o keep_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n within_o their_o due_a limit_n after_o this_o in_o most_o counsel_n for_o 300._o year_n after_o something_o still_o be_v do_v to_o bridle_v they_o for_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o as_o it_o appear_v do_v 99_o the_o third_o counsel_n of_o carthage_n hold_v about_o the_o year_n 435._o cap._n 26._o forbid_v the_o ambitious_a and_o proud_a title_n of_o prince_n of_o priest_n high-priest_n &_o such_o like_a even_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o first_o see_v and_o concilio_n milevitano_n about_o the_o year_n 420._o &_o in_o another_o of_o africa_n hold_v betwixt_o these_o two_o as_o some_o write_v about_o the_o year_n 428._o cap._n 92._o appeal_n unto_o they_o from_o the_o bishop_n &_o counsel_n of_o africa_n be_v forbid_v and_o the_o great_a general_a council_n of_o chalcedon_n hold_v about_o the_o year_n 453._o when_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n legate_n have_v do_v what_o they_o can_v to_o the_o contrary_a act._n 15.16_o &_o canon_n 28._o give_v the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n equal_a privilege_n with_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o long_o after_o this_o the_o first_o general_a counsel_n be_v the_o three_o as_o it_o be_v note_v in_o the_o second_o tome_n of_o the_o council_n hold_v at_o constantinople_n in_o the_o time_n of_o pope_n agatho_n about_o the_o year_n of_o the_o lord_n 681._o renew_v a_o decree_n before_o there_o consent_v unto_o in_o a_o council_n consist_v of_o 150._o bishop_n cap._n 5._o and_o remember_v likewise_o the_o foresay_a 28._o cannon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n whereas_o some_o write_v there_o be_v 630._o bishop_n cap._n 36._o ratifi_v and_o enact_v the_o same_o and_o if_o we_o go_v no_o further_o then_o to_o the_o former_a five_o general_a counsel_n we_o shall_v find_v they_o all_o to_o have_v have_v a_o care_n by_o their_o decree_n to_o keep_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n within_o their_o due_a bound_n of_o their_o own_o patriarchall_a see_v for_o proof_n whereof_o let_v any_o man_n but_o read_v the_o sixth_o canon_n of_o the_o nicene_n the_o second_o &_o three_o of_o the_o first_o of_o constantinople_n the_o eight_o of_o the_o ephesme_n remember_v withal_o the_o twenty_o eight_o of_o the_o chalcedon_n twice_o now_o immediate_o before_o mention_v &_o understand_v that_o the_o five_o general_a council_n solemn_o confirm_v those_o four_o former_a and_o their_o canon_n &_o decree_n and_o he_o can_v choose_v but_o see_v this_o to_o be_v most_o manifest_a but_o among_o all_o the_o rest_n notable_a be_v that_o that_o appear_v to_o this_o end_n in_o that_o great_a solemn_a african_a council_n where_o zozimus_n boniface_n &_o celestine_n three_o pope_n on_o a_o rue_n by_o their_o legate_n under_o one_o of_o their_o hand_n allege_v a_o false_a canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a all_o that_o be_v determine_v in_o former_a counsel_n to_o the_o contrary_a notwithstanding_o show_v themselves_o intolerable_o ambitious_a of_o supremacy_n thereby_o most_o eager_o claim_v such_o a_o pre-eminence_n to_o be_v give_v to_o their_o see_v that_o if_o any_o bishop_n or_o minister_n be_v depose_v in_o any_o other_o province_n or_o patriarchal_a see_v that_o upon_o his_o appeal_n to_o rome_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n may_v accept_v thereof_o &_o thereupon_o either_o write_v his_o letter_n to_o the_o next_o province_n to_o determine_v the_o matter_n or_o else_o to_o send_v his_o legate_n from_o his_o side_n to_o represent_v his_o own_o person_n to_o sit_v in_o judgement_n with_o the_o bishop_n there_o to_o determine_v the_o matter_n for_o there_o as_o it_o appear_v in_o the_o 101_o 102_o 103_o &_o 105_o chap._n of_o that_o council_n in_o the_o first_o tome_n of_o the_o counsel_n this_o their_o allegation_n be_v not_o only_o examine_v by_o all_o the_o copy_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n that_o they_o have_v there_o but_o also_o by_o ancient_a copy_n thereof_o which_o they_o send_v for_o thither_o of_o purpose_n to_o alexandria_n antioch_n &_o constantinople_n &_o thereby_o in_o the_o open_a face_n of_o that_o council_n where_o 217_o bishop_n be_v assemble_v their_o forgery_n be_v espy_v &_o therefore_o that_o allegation_n notwithstanding_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n deal_n concern_v apiarius_n who_o then_o give_v the_o occasion_n of_o that_o stir_n be_v there_o open_o dislike_v &_o condemn_v &_o therefore_o to_o prevent_v the_o like_a thereafter_o they_o in_o their_o 92_o chapter_n there_o determine_v that_o whosoever_o shall_v so_o appeal_v any_o more_o from_o the_o bishop_n &_o counsel_n of_o africa_n beyond_o the_o sea_n shall_v thenceforth_o never_o after_o of_o any_o in_o africa_n be_v receive_v into_o communion_n beside_o as_o it_o appear_v there_o in_o the_o 105._o cap._n by_o the_o common_a consent_n of_o that_o council_n a_o letter_n be_v frame_v and_o send_v to_o celestine_n about_o the_o latter_a end_n thereof_o as_o it_o shall_v seem_v by_o the_o story_n about_o the_o year_n four_o hundred_o and_o thirty_o wherein_o first_o they_o admonish_v he_o to_o admit_v no_o more_o such_o appeal_n or_o fugitive_n but_o to_o send_v they_o back_o again_o always_o to_o their_o own_o province_n and_o metropolitan_o and_o the_o rather_o say_v they_o because_o such_o order_n be_v take_v by_o the_o nicene_n council_n and_o after_o therein_o they_o plead_v the_o equity_n of_o that_o ordinance_n because_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v aswell_o in_o one_o province_n as_o in_o a_o other_o and_o there_o the_o cause_n be_v always_o like_o best_a to_o be_v handle_v where_o it_o do_v arise_v because_o of_o the_o neighnesse_n of_o the_o witness_n wherefore_o have_v tell_v he_o that_o they_o find_v no_o such_o thing_n in_o the_o true_a copy_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n as_o faustinus_n send_v by_o he_o allege_v they_o flat_o forbid_v he_o the_o send_n of_o his_o agent_n or_o legate_n any_o more_o upon_o any_o such_o occasion_n among_o they_o it_o shall_v seem_v for_o all_o this_o that_o so_o incident_a to_o that_o see_v be_v this_o ambitious_a humour_n that_o in_o pope_n symachus_n time_n about_o the_o year_n five_o hundred_o many_o bishop_n even_o in_o these_o part_n do_v accuse_v he_o to_o theodoricus_n king_n of_o the_o goth_n because_o he_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v one_o who_o will_v have_v his_o will_n to_o be_v a_o law_n which_o be_v now_o profess_a to_o be_v the_o pope_n prerogative_n and_o not_o to_o be_v control_v dist_n 40._o si_fw-mi papa_n in_o gregory_n his_o time_n in_o the_o reign_n of_o mauritius_n the_o emperor_n the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n lusty_o challenge_v the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n but_o then_o pelagius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o year_n five_o hundred_o eighty_o three_o as_o it_o appear_v in_o the_o ninty_a nine_o distinction_n of_o your_o law_n in_o gratian_n and_o gregory_n also_o his_o successor_n condemn_v that_o for_o a_o unlawful_a and_o antichristian_a name_n in_o he_o or_o in_o any_o other_o bishop_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n themselves_o not_o except_v lib._n 4._o epist_n 32.38.39_o and_o whereas_o this_o notwithstanding_o boniface_n the_o next_o but_o one_o to_o gregory_n though_o with_o somewhat_o a_o do_v obtain_v of_o that_o murderer_n and_o traitor_n phocas_n who_o have_v cruel_o slay_v mauritius_n succeed_v he_o in_o the_o empire_n this_o antichristian_a title_n first_o to_o be_v call_v universal_a bishop_n or_o head_n of_o the_o church_n witness_n sabellicus_n marianus_n scotus_n martinus_n polonus_n and_o other_o yet_o as_o platina_n witness_v in_o vita_fw-la dom_fw-la the_o church_n of_o ravenna_n in_o italy_n complain_v thereof_o and_o until_o pope_n donus_n time_n which_o be_v seventy_o year_n after_o it_o can_v not_o be_v bring_v to_o tolerate_v and_o like_v of_o it_o otho_fw-la frisingensis_n lib._n 6._o cap._n 35._o a_o ancient_a historiographer_n
nor_o scripture_n give_v it_o any_o credit_n or_o countenance_n at_o al._n for_o first_o whereas_o now_o they_o pray_v all_o in_o latin_a a_o tongue_n not_o understand_v of_o most_o that_o hear_v &_o use_v their_o prayer_n it_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o pray_v flat_o condemn_v because_o it_o be_v without_o edification_n to_o such_o by_o chrysostome_n &_o ambrose_n upon_o the_o 14._o of_o the_o first_o to_o the_o corinthian_n augustine_n also_o de_fw-la genesi_fw-la ad_fw-la literam_fw-la li._n 12._o cap._n 8._o join_v with_o they_o herein_o advouch_v that_o no_o man_n be_v edify_v by_o hear_v that_o which_o he_o understand_v not_o and_o the_o description_n of_o all_o the_o ancient_a liturgy_n in_o the_o church_n show_v that_o always_o they_o be_v use_v in_o such_o a_o tongue_n as_o the_o people_n understand_v aswell_o as_o the_o minister_n there_o be_v such_o mention_n of_o intercourse_n of_o speech_n one_o to_o the_o other_o as_o any_o man_n may_v see_v that_o peruse_v the_o description_n thereof_o yea_o writer_n both_o old_a &_o new_a do_v plain_o testify_v that_o the_o ancient_a &_o long_a continue_a use_n of_o the_o church_n have_v be_v to_o have_v her_o public_a liturgy_n in_o the_o know_v &_o vulgar_a tongue_n of_o the_o people_n for_o origen_n contra_fw-la celsum_fw-la lib._n 8._o write_v that_o the_o grecian_n name_v god_n in_o greek_a &_o the_o roman_n in_o the_o latin_a tongue_n and_o every_o one_o in_o their_o native_a and_o mother_n tongue_n pray_v &_o sing_v psalm_n unto_o god_n and_o hierom_n to_o eustochuim_n describe_v the_o solemn_a funeral_n of_o pacta_fw-la &_o elsewhere_o to_o marcelia_n testify_v that_o though_o to_o bethleem_n there_o be_v concourse_n of_o very_a many_o several_a nation_n yet_o every_o one_o there_o praise_v god_n &_o pray_v unto_o he_o in_o their_o own_o language_n insomuch_o that_o even_o lyra_n upon_o the_o 14_o of_o the_o first_o to_o the_o corinthian_n confess_v that_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n all_o be_v do_v in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n and_o no_o long_o ago_o then_o innocent_a the_o three_o time_n in_o the_o lateran_n council_n hold_v in_o his_o time_n 1215._o c._n 9_o order_n be_v take_v that_o where_o in_o one_o country_n there_o be_v people_n of_o diverse_a language_n there_o the_o bishop_n shall_v provide_v they_o minister_n to_o celebrate_v they_o divine_a service_n &_o to_o minister_v they_o the_o sacrament_n according_a to_o the_o diversity_n of_o their_o rite_n &_o language_n yet_o further_o that_o thou_o may_v see_v christian_a reader_n in_o this_o point_n that_o the_o man_n blush_v at_o nothing_o understand_v that_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o their_o own_o friend_n eckius_fw-la in_o his_o common_a place_n the_o south_n indians_n have_v their_o liturgy_n in_o their_o mother_n tongue_n &_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o another_o one_o sigismond_n write_v of_o the_o moscovite_n that_o they_o likewise_o have_v they_o and_o petrus_n bellonius_fw-la write_v of_o the_o armonians_n testify_v the_o like_a of_o they_o yea_o aeneas_n siluius_n who_o after_o be_v a_o pope_n in_o his_o history_n of_o the_o bohemians_n c._n 13._o plain_o show_v that_o a_o pope_n be_v admonish_v by_o a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n to_o grant_v cyril_n that_o convert_v russia_n &_o moralia_fw-la to_o say_v divine_a service_n among_o they_o in_o the_o shlavon_n tongue_n which_o be_v their_o vulgar_a tongue_n how_o have_v they_o they_o as_o he_o brag_v these_o thing_n consider_v either_o the_o ancient_a holy_a father_n consent_n of_o all_o region_n or_o such_o prescription_n of_o time_n as_o he_o pretend_v for_o this_o manner_n of_o pray_v of_o they_o in_o a_o tongue_n not_o understand_v of_o most_o and_o who_o can_v read_v the_o 14_o of_o the_o first_o to_o the_o corinthian_n unless_o he_o be_v dispose_v wilful_o to_o be_v blind_a but_o he_o must_v needs_o there_o see_v that_o this_o manner_n of_o pray_v be_v direct_o there_o condemn_v chrysostome_n ambrose_n haymo_n lyra_n and_o so_o expositor_n both_o ancient_a and_o new_a take_v it_o howsoever_o our_o late_a rhemist_n in_o their_o note_n will_v fain_o wrest_v the_o place_n from_o any_o such_o meaning_n and_o in_o this_o respect_n suppose_v otherwise_o their_o prayer_n be_v faultless_a who_o see_v not_o that_o they_o give_v god_n occasion_n again_o to_o renew_v his_o old_a complaint_n esay_n 29._o this_o people_n draw_v near_o unto_o i_o with_o their_o lip_n but_o their_o hart_n be_v far_o from_o i_o of_o most_o people_n which_o through_o their_o tyranny_n only_o pray_v thus_o but_o in_o this_o point_n only_o there_o be_v not_o vanity_n and_o falsehood_n in_o his_o brag_n for_o otherwise_o if_o we_o consider_v well_o their_o manner_n of_o pray_v we_o shall_v find_v both_o gross_a untruth_n in_o his_o speech_n and_o horrible_a fault_n in_o their_o prayer_n for_o how_o can_v it_o be_v true_a that_o consent_n of_o father_n and_o the_o rest_n that_o he_o brag_v of_o do_v countenance_n that_o set_v form_n of_o church-seruice_n that_o now_o they_o be_v in_o possession_n of_o see_v neither_o the_o ancient_a father_n nor_o yet_o one_o quarter_n of_o christendom_n be_v ever_o acquaint_v with_o it_o there_o own_o author_n and_o namely_o polydore_n de_fw-fr inventoribus_fw-la rerum_fw-la lib._n 5._o cap._n 10_o do_v show_v how_o it_o come_v in_o and_o be_v devyse_v piece_n after_o piece_n in_o the_o one_o thousand_o two_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n it_o be_v not_o grow_v either_o to_o that_o full_a form_n or_o credit_n that_o it_o be_v at_o now_o for_o the_o form_n of_o mass_n now_o use_v common_o call_v saint_n gregory_n mass_n with_o much_o ado_n get_v to_o be_v first_o in_o these_o western_a part_n receive_v in_o pope_n adrians_n time_n 790_o year_n after_o christ_n witness_n durand_n nauclere_n and_o jacobus_n de_fw-fr voragine_fw-la and_o yet_o even_o then_o and_o long_o after_o millayn_n continue_v the_o use_n of_o a_o form_n of_o liturgy_n receive_v from_o ambrose_n benedict_n the_o 3_o that_o succeed_v next_o joan_n the_o harlot_n about_o the_o year_n 857_o first_o invent_v &_o bring_v in_o the_o dirge_n as_o most_o author_n write_v though_o gregory_n the_o 3_o have_v do_v somewhat_o about_o it_o before_o the_o first_o allowance_n of_o the_o sequence_n in_o the_o mass_n be_v attribute_v to_o nicolas_n the_o first_o that_o succeed_v this_o benedict_n in_o alexander_n the_o 2_o time_n alliluiah_n be_v first_o suspend_v out_o of_o the_o church_n in_o ●ent_a time_n which_o be_v above_o 1000_o year_n after_o christ_n our_o ordinary_n here_o in_o england_n secundum_fw-la usum_fw-la sarum_n begin_v 1076_o year_n after_o christ_n and_o that_o as_o our_o story_n show_v by_o occasion_n of_o a_o bloody_a quarrel_n betwixt_o the_o abbot_n of_o glassenbury_n &_o his_o monk_n the_o 7_o canonical_a hour_n come_v in_o first_o by_o vrban_n the_o second_o in_o the_o year_n one_o thousand_o &_o ninety_o but_o gregory_n the_o nine_o that_o monstrous_a enemy_n of_o frederick_n the_o second_o first_o bring_v in_o that_o blasphemous_a canticle_n salue_fw-la regina_fw-la one_o thousand_o two_o hundred_o year_n &_o more_o after_o christ_n and_o howsoever_o these_o patch_n in_o the_o end_n grew_n in_o these_o part_n to_o b●●_n sow_v together_o yet_o the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o world_n under_o the_o cyprian_n time_n about_o the_o year_n 255._o when_v corneliu_n bishop_n of_o rome_n unaduised_o &_o contrary_a to_o the_o good_a policy_n of_o the_o church_n and_o after_o he_o stephanus_n take_v upon_o they_o so_o to_o admit_v of_o fugitive_n out_o of_o africa_n at_o rome_n that_o not_o only_o they_o receive_v they_o into_o their_o communion_n but_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o labour_v their_o restitution_n they_o be_v before_o for_o their_o just_a demerit_n excommunicate_v and_o depose_v in_o africa_n cyprian_n write_v unto_o they_o both_o to_o cornelius_n in_o his_o first_o book_n of_o epistle_n epistle_n 3._o and_o to_o stephanus_n in_o his_o second_o book_n and_o first_o epistle_n wherein_o earnest_o he_o reprove_v they_o for_o so_o intermeddle_v in_o his_o jurisdiction_n &_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o other_o his_o colleague_n in_o africa_n show_v they_o that_o they_o ought_v not_o so_o to_o do_v for_o they_o in_o africa_n have_v as_o full_a bishoply_n authority_n as_o they_o at_o rome_n and_o therefore_o be_v both_o able_a and_o the_o fit_a to_o hear_v and_o determine_v such_o case_n as_o fell_v out_o among_o themselves_o but_o see_v for_o all_o this_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n still_o be_v too_o busy_a in_o meddle_v further_o than_o they_o shall_v after_o this_o in_o the_o counsel_n of_o nice_a cannon_n 6._o their_o authority_n and_o the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n be_v make_v equal_a about_o the_o year_n 320._o and_o yet_o the_o better_a to_o stay_v and_o keep_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n within_o their_o due_a limit_n after_o this_o in_o most_o counsel_n for_o 300._o year_n after_o
be_v the_o thing_n that_o caluin_n tell_v you_o you_o must_v show_v or_o else_o you_o must_v confess_v your_o call_n be_v not_o of_o god_n see_v it_o be_v but_o to_o a_o office_n of_o your_o own_o boldness_n devise_v and_o take_v in_o hand_n and_o yet_o this_o be_v a_o thing_n which_o to_o justify_v your_o call_n it_o stand_v you_o upon_o most_o &_o in_o the_o best_a manner_n you_o can_v to_o have_v prove_v yea_o without_o the_o proof_n whereof_o all_o that_o ever_o you_o have_v say_v or_o can_v say_v of_o never_o so_o ordinary_a a_o come_n thereunto_o be_v mere_o vain_a &_o frivolous_a yet_o you_o say_v you_o will_v not_o meddle_v with_o it_o here_o at_o this_o time_n but_o you_o put_v it_o of_o to_o another_o place_n not_o once_o find_v time_n &_o place_n in_o this_o your_o discourse_n to_o speak_v a_o word_n of_o it_o again_o wherein_o at_o the_o first_o entrance_n in_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o wise_a you_o have_v give_v your_o priesthood_n a_o great_a wound_n than_o all_o that_o you_o have_v say_v concern_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o your_o vocation_n thereunto_o can_v ever_o heal_v up_o again_o for_o this_o thing_n be_v the_o most_o pertinent_a &_o material_a thing_n that_o can_v be_v your_o drift_n and_o purpose_n in_o this_o discourse_n consider_v for_o you_o to_o have_v labour_v about_o as_o about_o the_o soul_n of_o your_o cause_n to_o give_v all_o the_o rest_n life_n how_o can_v you_o persuade_v yourself_o but_o that_o in_o thus_o shift_v of_o this_o though_o so_o thrust_v upon_o you_o by_o your_o own_o cite_n of_o caluins_n word_n but_o that_o every_o one_o will_v straight_o judge_v that_o you_o do_v it_o not_o because_o you_o have_v no_o will_n to_o have_v prove_v it_o but_o because_o you_o fear_v that_o your_o skill_n will_v not_o serve_v you_o substantial_o to_o do_v it_o and_o therefore_o in_o policy_n you_o think_v it_o more_o wisdone_v thus_o to_o pass_v it_o over_o as_o though_o you_o can_v say_v enough_o thereof_o if_o you_o listen_v then_o by_o enter_v into_o it_o to_o lay_v open_a your_o weakness_n to_o your_o friend_n in_o so_o great_a a_o matter_n at_o your_o first_o entrance_n into_o your_o book_n howsoever_o you_o have_v think_v it_o the_o safe_a way_n in_o this_o place_n to_o say_v nothing_o hereof_o &_o for_o save_v your_o credit_n to_o make_v show_n as_o though_o you_o will_v say_v enough_o in_o some_o other_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n even_o here_o the_o nature_n of_o your_o popish_a priesthood_n consider_v i_o confident_o advouch_v that_o neither_o you_o nor_o all_o you_o together_o can_v ever_o prove_v indeed_o that_o it_o be_v of_o god_n for_o the_o scripture_n teach_v we_o that_o christ_n have_v a_o everlasting_a priesthood_n and_o that_o he_o execute_v that_o office_n here_o and_o do_v still_o there_o where_o he_o be_v for_o his_o church_n so_o perfect_o that_o he_o have_v this_o prerogative_n that_o he_o need_v no_o successor_n to_o continue_v his_o office_n as_o the_o priests_z of_o aaron_z have_v nor_o any_o other_o either_o to_o offer_v any_o new_a or_o to_o iterate_v that_o sacrifice_n which_o he_o offer_v himself_o for_o the_o salvation_n of_o man_n he_o have_v offer_v one_o so_o perfect_a &_o so_o perfect_o once_o for_o all_o he._n 7.23.24_o &_o 10_o 10._o etc._n etc._n which_o prerogative_n the_o mass_v priesthood_n rob_v he_o of_o first_o in_o that_o they_o will_v be_v his_o successor_n in_o the_o office_n of_o priesthood_n and_o they_o in_o that_o they_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o offer_v he_o again_o in_o sacrifice_n to_o his_o father_n for_o the_o sin_n as_o they_o say_v both_o of_o the_o quick_a &_o dead_a &_o most_o blasphemous_o make_v themselves_o in_o their_o offer_v he_o again_o to_o his_o father_n mediator_n betwixt_o he_o and_o his_o father_n pray_v he_o as_o it_o appear_v in_o there_o masse-book_n that_o he_o will_v favourable_o look_v upon_o and_o receive_v those_o host_n which_o they_o there_o offer_v unto_o he_o for_o the_o soul_n of_o such_o and_o such_o exit_fw-la missâ_fw-la pro_fw-la defunctis_fw-la ex_fw-la secretis_fw-la werefore_o i_o dare_v be_v bold_a to_o say_v that_o so_o far_o of_o be_v it_o that_o their_o priesthood_n be_v of_o god_n ordinance_n that_o most_o certain_o it_o be_v of_o satan_n own_o devise_v and_o be_v most_o injurious_a to_o the_o death_n and_o passion_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o antichristian_a howbeit_o see_v you_o have_v leave_v caluins_n assertion_n that_o it_o be_v not_o of_o god_n stand_v without_o any_o refutation_n and_o so_o be_v content_v until_o you_o better_o advise_v yourself_o what_o to_o say_v against_o it_o to_o let_v it_o stand_v still_o in_o the_o mean_a season_n to_o render_v we_o account_v of_o your_o come_n unto_o it_o upon_o condition_n that_o we_o will_v make_v ready_a our_o paper_n when_o you_o have_v answer_v we_o to_o answer_v you_o how_o we_o come_v by_o our_o ministry_n i_o be_o content_a to_o accept_v of_o this_o your_o condition_n and_o so_o to_o hear_v first_o what_o you_o can_v say_v for_o the_o justify_n of_o your_o vocation_n and_o after_o when_o and_o where_o you_o call_v for_o it_o to_o yield_v you_o a_o account_n of_o we_o but_o then_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n i_o must_v put_v you_o in_o mind_n and_o pray_v the_o gentle_a reader_n to_o mark_v it_o that_o for_o any_o thing_n you_o have_v say_v yet_o caluins_n assertion_n against_o your_o office_n of_o priesthood_n itself_o that_o it_o be_v not_o of_o god_n stand_v in_o full_a force_n you_o write_v that_o you_o be_v call_v to_o this_o estate_n according_a to_o the_o ordinary_a way_n that_o be_v say_v you_o by_o the_o right_a succession_n of_o bishop_n &_o pastor_n and_o by_o the_o continuance_n of_o one_o catholic_a faith_n derive_v from_o the_o apostle_n to_o our_o day_n wtout_fw-fr the_o interruption_n of_o it_o universal_o this_o you_o say_v indeed_o but_o what_o have_v you_o either_o here_o or_o else_o where_o in_o this_o your_o notable_a discourse_n for_o so_o either_o you_o or_o your_o friend_n call_v it_o bring_v we_o to_o prove_v this_o you_o cite_v here_o mat._n 5._o eph._n 4._o &_o a_o place_n out_o of_o esay_n with_o be_v there_o cap._n 62.6_o though_o in_o your_o book_n it_o be_v quote_v sap._n 61._o but_o neither_o any_o of_o these_o nor_o all_o these_o together_o do_v prove_v your_o say_n to_o be_v true_a for_o take_v the_o place_n in_o your_o own_o sense_n the_o thing_n thereby_o prove_v be_v only_o these_o first_o that_o the_o true_a catholic_n faith_n have_v always_o so_o shine_v that_o it_o have_v give_v light_a at_o all_o time_n in_o one_o place_n or_o other_o to_o they_o within_o the_o house_n that_o be_v that_o be_v wtin_n the_o true_a catholic_n church_n &_o to_o such_o as_o be_v near_o thereunto_o and_o within_o the_o sight_n thereof_o and_o that_o christ_n will_v have_v continual_o even_o until_o his_o second_o come_v and_o until_o his_o church_n be_v grow_v to_o her_o full_a perfection_n his_o truth_n continue_v in_o his_o church_n by_o faithful_a pastor_n and_o minister_n and_o to_o this_o end_n serve_v also_o in_o your_o opinion_n your_o similitude_n take_v from_o a_o material_a building_n which_o can_v be_v perfect_v without_o continuance_n of_o workman_n until_o it_o be_v do_v which_o yet_o carri_v with_o it_o a_o dissimilitude_n even_o in_o the_o thing_n wherein_o you_o resemble_v it_o unto_o the_o church_n for_o we_o see_v by_o daily_a experience_n that_o in_o material_a building_n if_o they_o be_v great_a there_o be_v often_o time_n great_a and_o many_o interruption_n and_o ceasing_n of_o the_o workman_n and_o yet_o in_o the_o end_n the_o build_n well_o enough_o prefected_a but_o be_v it_o that_o these_o place_n prove_v these_o thing_n and_o that_o your_o unapt_a similitude_n have_v no_o unfitness_n in_o it_o what_o be_v all_o this_o to_o the_o purpose_n do_v it_o hereupon_o follow_v that_o you_o come_v to_o your_o office_n of_o priest_n &_o bishop_n as_o you_o have_v say_v because_o christ_n have_v always_o &_o will_v to_o the_o end_n preserve_v and_o continue_v the_o light_n of_o his_o truth_n by_o the_o faithful_a ministry_n of_o some_o in_o his_o church_n which_o be_v a_o thing_n which_o we_o always_o have_v constant_o &_o firm_o believe_v to_o be_v true_a because_o he_o have_v have_v have_v and_o will_v ever_o unto_o the_o end_n have_v a_o holy_a catholic_a church_n against_o which_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n neither_o have_v at_o any_o time_n do_v nor_o ever_o shall_v universal_o prevail_v shall_v it_o hereupon_o follow_v that_o therefore_o your_o priest_n &_o bishop_n be_v the_o man_n who_o christ_n have_v always_o and_o yet_o do_v use_n to_o this_o end_n or_o that_o among_o they_o there_o have_v always_o be_v the_o right_a succession_n in_o one_o catholic_a faith_n their_o
oft_o in_o this_o your_o book_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o your_o side_n continual_o bear_v the_o simple_a reader_n and_o unlearned_a christian_a in_o hand_n that_o before_o luther_n there_o be_v none_o of_o our_o religion_n that_o have_v so_o condemn_v your_o church_n and_o religion_n as_o we_o do_v i_o will_v vouchsafe_v for_o the_o better_a enable_v of_o every_o one_o that_o shall_v read_v this_o my_o answer_n to_o see_v your_o vanity_n and_o impiety_n though_o this_o which_o i_o have_v note_v already_o be_v sufficient_a to_o lay_v open_a your_o folly_n to_o proceed_v yet_o somewhat_o further_o in_o this_o matter_n wherefore_o to_o go_v on_o in_o the_o course_n of_o time_n though_o your_o popish_a church_n have_v be_v in_o her_o ruff_n and_o at_o the_o high_o that_o ever_o she_o be_v this_o latter_a 400_o year_n yet_o we_o be_v able_a to_o show_v that_o there_o have_v be_v many_o even_o in_o this_o time_n from_o time_n to_o time_n and_o that_o in_o sundry_a place_n that_o have_v join_v with_o we_o against_o you_o &_o that_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o such_o newness_n or_o strangeness_n in_o our_o religion_n a_o do_v do_n as_o you_o will_v make_v the_o ignorant_a believe_v for_o in_o the_o day_n of_o gregory_n the_o 9_o in_o the_o year_n 1230_o the_o greek_a church_n and_o other_o eastern_a church_n do_v quite_o forsake_v communion_n with_o you_o who_o ever_o since_o join_v with_o we_o in_o a_o number_n of_o thing_n against_o you_o as_o namely_o in_o withstand_v the_o supremacy_n of_o your_o romish_a bishop_n as_o appear_v not_o only_o by_o one_o epistle_n that_o germanus_n petriarch_n of_o constantinople_n write_v unto_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o year_n 1237_o but_o also_o by_o a_o large_a book_n write_v about_o the_o year_n 1384_o by_o nilus_n archbishop_n of_o thessalonica_n wherein_o he_o do_v not_o only_o confute_v his_o supremacy_n even_o as_o we_o do_v but_o also_o he_o enueigh_v against_o all_o those_o that_o hold_v communion_n with_o the_o popish_a or_o latin_a church_n and_o as_o it_o appear_v in_o ancient_a record_n in_o the_o church_n of_o herford_n wherein_o 29_o of_o the_o article_n wherein_o they_o differ_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v set_v down_o they_o join_v not_o only_o with_o we_o in_o this_o point_n in_o separate_a themselves_o from_o the_o romish_a church_n &_o in_o deny_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n which_o be_v the_o very_a foundation_n of_o your_o church_n and_o religion_n but_o also_o in_o deny_v purgatory_n and_o mass_n for_o the_o dead_a in_o hold_v it_o lawful_a for_o their_o minister_n to_o enjoy_v the_o benefit_n of_o matrimony_n in_o not_o use_v any_o private_a mass_n in_o not_o deny_v the_o cup_n to_o any_o that_o receive_v in_o not_o minister_a the_o communion_n in_o private_a house_n in_o not_o use_v extreme_a unction_n and_o in_o sundry_a other_o point_n and_o by_o diverse_a epistle_n write_v from_o thence_o of_o late_a extant_a in_o print_n both_o in_o greek_a and_o latin_a to_o chitreus_n and_o other_o german_n it_o evident_o appear_v that_o they_o join_v with_o we_o against_o the_o romish_a church_n in_o many_o other_o great_a and_o weighty_a point_n of_o our_o religion_n and_o that_o great_a hope_n there_o be_v that_o they_o may_v easy_o be_v bring_v to_o join_v with_o we_o in_o the_o rest_n beside_o these_o eastern_a church_n even_o here_o in_o these_o western_a part_n evident_a it_o be_v that_o there_o have_v be_v many_o great_a learned_a and_o famous_a person_n with_o innumerable_a follower_n at_o all_o time_n from_o age_n to_o age_n in_o these_o latter_a 400_o year_n when_o the_o tyranny_n of_o your_o pope_n to_z repress_v they_o have_v be_v the_o great_a and_o strong_a that_o ever_o it_o be_v which_o yet_o have_v open_o with_o we_o stand_v forth_o against_o they_o and_o their_o religion_n for_o frederick_n the_o second_o as_o diverse_a other_o emperor_n have_v be_v before_o he_o as_o namely_o constantine_n the_o 5._o leo_n his_o son_n and_o constantine_n the_o 6_o in_o the_o east_n and_o henry_n the_o 4_o and_o 5_o in_o the_o west_n be_v a_o notable_a antagonist_n of_o the_o 3_o pope_n in_o his_o time_n contend_v against_o they_o to_o maintain_v the_o authority_n of_o christian_a prince_n against_o their_o usurp_a supremacy_n over_o they_o about_o the_o year_n 1260_o as_o notorious_o the_o chronicle_n of_o those_o time_n write_v by_o your_o own_o man_n platina_n sabelicus_n and_o other_o declare_v and_o 20_o year_n before_o that_o krantzius_n testify_v in_o his_o history_n that_o there_o be_v many_o that_o preach_v open_o in_o suevia_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v a_o heretic_n his_o clergy_n symoniake_v and_o general_o they_o all_o seducer_n of_o the_o people_n ten_o year_n after_o that_o flourish_v arnoldus_fw-la de_n nouâ_fw-la villâ_fw-la a_o spaniard_n who_o teach_v that_o satan_n have_v they_o seduce_v the_o world_n that_o the_o faith_n they_o teach_v be_v but_o such_o as_o devil_n have_v mean_v belike_o a_o bare_a historical_a faith_n that_o the_o pope_n lead_v man_n to_o hell_n that_o he_o and_o his_o clergy_n do_v falsify_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n that_o mass_n be_v naught_o &_o not_o to_o be_v say_v for_o the_o dead_a etc._n etc._n and_o therefore_o your_o popish_a church_n condemn_v he_o for_o a_o heretic_n much_o what_o about_o the_o same_o time_n be_v gulielmus_fw-la de_n sancto_fw-la amore_fw-la a_o master_n and_o chief_a ruler_n then_o in_o paris_n who_o go_v as_o far_o as_o arnoldus_fw-la apply_v the_o same_o scripture_n which_o concern_v antichrist_n as_o we_o do_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o clergy_n and_o therefore_o he_o also_o be_v condemn_v for_o a_o heretic_n and_o his_o book_n burn_v by_o your_o popish_a rout_n and_o in_o the_o year_n 1260_o laurentius_n anglicus_n a_o master_n of_o paris_n also_o take_v this_o william_n part_n against_o the_o pope_n &_o write_v a_o book_n in_o his_o defence_n in_o the_o year_n 1290_o petrus_n johamnes_n a_o minorite_n direct_o preach_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v antichrist_n and_o rome_n great_a babylon_n and_o therefore_o he_o be_v burn_v after_o he_o be_v dead_a 30_o year_n and_o more_o before_o this_o robert_z grosthead_n a_o famous_a learned_a man_n and_o bishop_n of_o lincoln_n for_o he_o die_v in_o the_o year_n one_o thousand_o two_o hundred_o fifty_o three_o be_v a_o great_a withstander_n of_o the_o pope_n tyranny_n and_o three_o day_n before_o his_o death_n have_v conference_n with_o his_o clergy_n he_o labour_v to_o make_v they_o see_v by_o sundry_a demonstration_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n and_o his_o do_n antichristian_a king_n philip_n of_o france_n about_o the_o year_n one_o thousand_o three_o hundred_o be_v a_o great_a withstander_n of_o the_o supremacy_n which_o now_o the_o pope_n challenge_v and_o a_o resister_n in_o his_o dominion_n of_o sundry_a of_o his_o enormity_n and_o william_n nagareta_n and_o the_o prelate_n of_o france_n then_o join_v with_o their_o king_n against_o the_o pope_n grosthead_n this_o king_n philip_n and_o his_o clergy_n as_o afterward_o king_n edward_n the_o 3._o king_n of_o england_n in_o the_o year_n 1346_o despise_v the_o pope_n curse_n &_o appeal_v from_o he_o to_o god_n there_o be_v in_o a_o ancient_a chronicle_n of_o s._n albon_n a_o notable_a epistle_n of_o one_o cassiodorus_n to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n wherein_o be_v lay_v forth_o a_o number_n of_o lamentable_a abuse_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o the_o year_n one_o thousand_o three_o hundred_o twenty_o eight_o in_o the_o extravagant_n we_o read_v that_o marsillus_n patavinus_n johannes_n de_fw-fr ganduno_n michael_n chesenas_n petrus_n de_fw-fr carborea_n and_o johannes_n de_fw-fr poliaco_n all_o great_a learned_a man_n be_v condemn_v by_o the_o pope_n for_o preach_v against_o his_o supremacy_n and_o other_o error_n of_o that_o church_n of_o he_o about_o the_o year_n 1326._o there_o be_v they_o also_o many_o learned_a man_n more_o that_o dispute_v &_o write_v against_o his_o supremacy_n &_o which_o take_v part_n with_o ludovicke_a the_o emperor_n against_o he_o as_o william_n occam_n luitpoldus_n andreas_n landanensis_fw-la vlricus_fw-la hangenor_n the_o emperor_n treasurer_n and_o other_o dante_n be_v live_n in_o the_o year_n one_o thousand_o three_o hundred_o write_v against_o the_o pope_n the_o order_n of_o religious_a man_n and_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o decree_n say_v that_o these_o be_v three_o great_a enemy_n to_o the_o truth_n he_o flat_o have_v leave_v in_o write_v in_o his_o canticle_n of_o purgatory_n that_o the_o pope_n of_o a_o pastor_n be_v become_v a_o wolf_n &_o that_o he_o be_v the_o whoar_n of_o babylon_n in_o the_o year_n 1350._o gregory_n ariminensis_n andreas_n de_fw-fr castro_n and_o burdianus_n teach_v as_o we_o do_v against_o your_o doctrine_n of_o freewill_n and_o merit_n taulerus_n then_o a_o preacher_n in_o argentine_n preach_v open_o against_o your_o doctrine_n
and_o not_o to_o perfect_v it_o be_v to_o leave_v the_o church_n without_o a_o perfect_a touchstone_n to_o try_v all_o doctrine_n by_o and_o argue_v that_o it_o be_v either_o because_o he_o can_v not_o or_o will_v not_o perfect_v it_o whereof_o the_o one_o rob_v he_o of_o his_o almighty_a power_n and_o infinite_a knowledge_n the_o other_o of_o the_o perfection_n of_o love_n and_o faithfulness_n towards_o the_o churchy_n therefore_o most_o certain_o in_o the_o write_v word_n there_o be_v leave_v a_o full_a and_o perfect_a direction_n for_o the_o church_n and_o consequent_o those_o unwriten_a tradition_n that_o some_o strive_v for_o be_v superfluous_a thus_o you_o have_v your_o answer_n to_o this_o chapter_n the_o vi_o chapter_n saint_n augustine_n in_o his_o epistle_n all_o epistle_n you_o shall_v say_v 165._o f_o r_o there_n be_v but_o 204._o epistle_n in_o all_o 365._o about_o the_o like_a matter_n do_v set_v forth_o all_o the_o pope_n by_o order_n which_o have_v be_v from_o s._n peter_n time_n until_o anastasius_n which_o be_v pope_n in_o his_o time_n and_o by_o his_o continual_a succession_n he_o do_v prove_v be_v prove_v by_o the_o same_o argument_n we_o disprove_v popery_n because_o none_o of_o they_o that_o he_o reckon_v up_o there_o be_v of_o the_o romish_a religion_n that_o now_o be_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o donatist_n be_v heretical_a because_o that_o none_o of_o those_o pope_n which_o he_o do_v recite_v nor_o no_o part_n of_o the_o church_n do_v receive_v it_o i_o pray_v you_o may_v not_o we_o say_v the_o like_a by_o the_o caluiniste_n the_o no_o not_o by_o they_o true_o who_o you_o call_v caluiniste_n caluinist_n and_o other_o heretic_n the_o say_v s._n augustine_n in_o the_o epistle_n that_o these_o that_o it_o seem_v you_o be_v a_o learned_a man_n for_o augustine_n write_v against_o a_o epistle_n so_o call_v he_o call_v not_o his_o so_o the_o epithet_n roman_n you_o add_v &_o the_o word_n all_o and_o continual_a for_o he_o speak_v but_o of_o succession_n to_o his_o time_n and_o yet_o there_o he_o say_v that_o o●●●e_a truth_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o all_o these_o he_o do_v call_v epistola_fw-la fundamenti_fw-la cap._n 4._o do_v write_v the_o reason_n that_o do_v keep_v he_o under_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o catholic_a roman_a church_n and_o among_o other_o he_o do_v allege_v the_o common_a consent_n of_o all_o nation_n &_o the_o continual_a succession_n of_o bishop_n one_o bishop_n this_o show_v your_o great_a ignorance_n or_o negligence_n for_o of_o th●●_n argument_n augustine_n write_v two_o book_n and_o in_o every_o book_n many_o chapter_n there_o be_v but_o this_o be_v common_a with_o you_o the_o more_o to_o trouble_v your_o reader_n to_o send_v he_o to_o whole_a book_n and_o beside_o sometime_o to_o set_v down_o your_o quotation_n as_o though_o the_o author_n have_v write_v but_o one_o when_o he_o write_v mo_z of_o that_o argument_n or_o as_o though_o he_o have_v write_v more_o when_o he_o have_v write_v but_o one_o and_o in_o his_o book_n which_o he_o make_v against_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a law_n he_o do_v name_n the_o succession_n of_o the_o bishop_n as_o most_o certain_a to_o answer_v to_o that_o that_o we_o say_v before_o of_o s._n 1._o s._n ephes_n 1._o paul_n 4._o paul_n you_o write_v ephes_n 1._o for_o ephes_n 4._o i_o mean_v that_o he_o will_v not_o have_v we_o to_o be_v waver_v and_o doubtful_a in_o our_o doctrine_n but_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v firm_a and_o stable_a the_o which_o stableness_n be_v obtain_v by_o the_o knowledge_n and_o intelligence_n of_o the_o scripture_n according_a to_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o bishop_n not_o bishop_n it_o continue_v so_o to_o augustine_n time_n that_o be_v three_o or_o four_o hundred_o year_n so_o ergo_fw-la so_fw-mi a_o thousand_o five_o hundred_o year_n and_o more_o it_o shall_v so_o continue_v the_o argument_n follow_v not_o the_o church_n say_v s._n augustine_n from_o the_o apostle_n time_n have_v continue_v through_o the_o certain_a succession_n of_o the_o bishop_n until_o our_o day_n the_o vi_o chapter_n in_o this_o 6._o chapter_n you_o cite_v three_o place_n though_o some_o of_o they_o wrong_v quote_v out_o of_o augustine_n whereby_o indeed_o it_o appear_v that_o as_o irenaeus_n do_v object_n succession_n even_o so_o do_v he_o to_o confute_v the_o heretic_n of_o his_o time_n that_o teach_v thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n but_o as_o i_o have_v say_v unto_o you_o concern_v irenaeus_n so_o do_v i_o concern_v he_o you_o must_v remember_v that_o augustine_n live_v &_o write_v within_o 400._o year_n after_o christ_n unto_o who_o time_n the_o bishop_n &_o pastor_n who_o succession_n he_o produce_v have_v continue_v at_o least_o sound_v in_o the_o fundamental_a point_n of_o christian_a religion_n from_o which_o you_o &_o your_o predecessor_n fall_v away_o long_o ago_o &_o therefore_o that_o which_o he_o may_v herein_o safe_o and_o to_o good_a purpose_n do_v you_o can_v do_v without_o peril_n &_o to_o a_o ill_a end_n again_o you_o must_v be_v tell_v that_o as_o irenaeus_n be_v not_o so_o neither_o be_v he_o in_o thus_o do_v a_o prophet_n to_o show_v that_o to_o the_o world_n end_n it_o will_v be_v safe_a thus_o to_o do_v and_o last_o i_o will_v have_v both_o you_o and_o your_o reader_n to_o remember_v that_o it_o be_v not_o bare_a personal_a succession_n that_o augustine_n here_o make_v such_o reckon_n of_o but_o that_o when_o it_o be_v join_v also_o with_o succession_n of_o truth_n of_o doctrine_n as_o it_o be_v in_o his_o time_n with_o they_o of_o who_o succession_n he_o speak_v and_o be_v not_o now_o with_o you_o and_o they_o of_o who_o succession_n you_o brag_v so_o much_o which_o three_o thing_n consider_v whatsoever_o thing_n further_a by_o you_o or_o any_o of_o your_o fellow_n be_v allege_v to_o this_o purpose_n out_o of_o tertullian_n cyprian_n or_o epiphanius_n which_o you_o may_v have_v as_o well_o allege_v as_o irenaeus_n or_o augustine_n be_v answer_v for_o they_o all_o of_o they_o live_v within_o 500_o year_n after_o christ_n when_o as_o yet_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n stand_v in_o good_a term_n in_o comparison_n that_o you_o do_v and_o they_o all_o speak_v of_o succession_n of_o person_n succeed_v also_o one_o another_o in_o the_o apostolic_a truth_n and_o they_o speak_v but_o for_o their_o own_o time_n they_o prophesy_v not_o that_o so_o it_o will_v be_v always_o and_o yet_o thus_o it_o be_v your_o fashion_n to_o beguile_v the_o simple_a that_o whatsoever_o you_o read_v 1000_o year_n ago_o speak_v in_o commendation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o then_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n or_o catholic_a faith_n that_o you_o will_v bear_v they_o in_o hand_n be_v speak_v of_o your_o romish_a church_n and_o religion_n now_o when_o as_o you_o compare_v with_o those_o time_n have_v no_o similitude_n with_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n then_o in_o a_o great_a number_n of_o weighty_a point_n but_o for_o the_o better_a satisfy_n of_o the_o reader_n indeed_o s._n august_n what_o account_n soever_o either_o in_o these_o place_n here_o recite_v by_o you_o or_o else_o where_o he_o seem_v to_o make_v of_o personal_a succession_n or_o of_o any_o such_o outward_a thing_n in_o the_o church_n make_v more_o account_n of_o sole_a truth_n teach_v only_o by_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n then_o of_o all_o other_o thing_n beside_o for_o even_o in_o in_o his_o 165._o epistle_n which_o be_v the_o epistle_n as_o it_o shall_v seem_v which_o you_o mean_v though_o you_o quote_v the_o 365._o which_o be_v more_o by_o a_o hundred_o &_o one_o then_o there_o be_v in_o all_o after_o he_o say_v we_o presume_v not_o so_o much_o of_o these_o as_o of_o the_o scripture_n and_o in_o the_o second_o place_n by_o you_o here_o cite_v out_o of_o he_o which_o ignorant_o you_o say_v he_o call_v epistola_fw-la fundamenti_fw-la whereas_o he_o call_v none_o of_o his_o epistle_n so_o but_o write_v against_o a_o epistle_n of_o the_o manichee_n which_o they_o so_o call_v one_o book_n in_o the_o late_a end_n of_o the_o four_o chapter_n whereof_o after_o he_o have_v reckon_v up_o the_o thing_n which_o do_v hold_v he_o in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o may_v likewise_o hold_v any_o believer_n therein_o though_o truth_n as_o yet_o do_v not_o most_o manifest_o show_v herself_o he_o add_v by_o &_o by_o but_z with_o you_o speak_v to_o the_o manichee_n sola_fw-la personat_fw-la veritatis_fw-la pollicitatio_fw-la etc._n etc._n only_a promise_n of_o truth_n ring_v which_o true_o if_o it_o be_v show_v to_o be_v on_o your_o side_n so_o manifest_a that_o it_o can_v be_v call_v into_o doubt_n praeponenda_fw-la est_fw-la omnibus_fw-la illis_fw-la rebus_fw-la quibus_fw-la in_o
needs_o be_v a_o monstrous_a misshape_a thing_n in_o join_v the_o christian_n of_o these_o late_a day_n with_o the_o apostle_n without_o any_o betwixt_o and_o fos●●ating_v as_o it_o be_v the_o foot_n of_o the_o body_n hard_o to_o the_o ear_n without_o any_o other_o member_n betwixt_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o and_o thus_o have_v frame_v this_o merry_a conceit_n in_o your_o own_o head_n you_o call_v upon_o your_o friend_n to_o laugh_v at_o it_o with_o you_o and_o so_o you_o proceed_v in_o tell_v we_o that_o while_o we_o take_v this_o course_n we_o fly_v without_o wing_n and_o climb_v without_o a_o ladder_n and_o despise_v the_o counsel_n of_o solomon_n which_o after_o your_o manner_n you_o interpret_v that_o we_o shall_v reckon_v by_o succession_n the_o pastor_n that_o have_v succeed_v in_o continuance_n of_o one_o kind_n of_o doctrine_n the_o which_o you_o say_v you_o have_v show_v you_o have_v do_v to_o what_o purpose_n now_o be_v all_o this_o see_v in_o truth_n neither_o we_o do_v thus_o cut_v of_o all_o christian_n betwixt_o they_o and_o we_o neither_o have_v you_o show_v any_o such_o succession_n of_o pastor_n down_o from_o they_o to_o you_o continue_v in_o your_o doctrine_n true_o to_o no_o other_o purpose_n can_v they_o serve_v but_o to_o express_v your_o own_o ridiculous_a vanity_n howbeit_o because_o you_o call_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n for_o the_o name_n of_o those_o that_o have_v catch_v we_o to_o deny_v your_o real_a presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o upon_o a_o conceit_n in_o your_o own_o fancy_n that_o you_o have_v pose_v we_o you_o have_v grow_v to_o be_v thus_o full_a of_o these_o swell_a word_n of_o vanity_n and_o because_o i_o fear_v neither_o you_o nor_o many_o of_o your_o disciple_n will_v vouchsafe_v to_o peruse_v those_o book_n that_o i_o send_v you_o unto_o for_o answer_v in_o that_o point_n &_o yet_o have_v hope_n that_o for_o your_o sake_n some_o of_o you_o may_v chance_n vouchsafe_v to_o read_v this_o i_o will_v not_o stick_v with_o you_o particular_o to_o satisfy_v your_o request_n a_o little_a further_o first_o therefore_o understand_v that_o we_o have_v learn_v to_o deny_v your_o kind_n of_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n himself_o the_o institutour_n of_o this_o sacrament_n because_o he_o have_v flat_o and_o vehement_o affirm_v without_o exception_n john_n 6.54_o that_o whosoever_o eat_v his_o flesh_n &_o drink_v his_o blood_n have_v eternal_a life_n whereas_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o your_o doctrine_n it_o follow_v because_o all_o that_o receive_v this_o sacrament_n have_v not_o faith_n but_o many_o lack_v it_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v eat_v of_o many_o that_o shall_v be_v never_n the_o better_a by_o it_o but_o the_o worse_o we_o have_v also_o further_o learn_v it_o of_o he_o in_o that_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n speak_v of_o the_o eat_n of_o his_o body_n &_o drink_v of_o his_o blood_n he_o draw_v his_o hearer_n from_o a_o gross_a conceit_n of_o eat_v &_o drink_v he_o by_o their_o bodily_a mouth_n by_o use_v of_o the_o word_n believe_v in_o stead_n of_o eat_v and_o drink_v ver_fw-la 40.47_o and_o cap._n 7.38_o by_o mention_v unto_o they_o his_o ascension_n john_n 6.62_o &_o latt_o by_o say_v unto_o they_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n that_o quicken_v the_o flesh_n profit_v nothing_o the_o word_n that_o i_o speak_v unto_o you_o be_v spirit_n &_o life_n ver_fw-la 63._o this_o final_o we_o have_v learn_v of_o he_o say_v if_o any_o shall_v say_v unto_o you_o lo_o here_o be_v christ_n there_o be_v christ_n believe_v it_o not_o math._n 24.23_o &_o by_o his_o continue_v at_o the_o table_n when_o he_o first_o institute_v and_o minister_v it_o unto_o his_o apostle_n without_o alteration_n either_o of_o his_o place_n or_o form_n mat._n 26._o mar._n 12._o luke_n 22.1_o cor._n 11._o the_o apostle_n &_o evamgelist_n have_v also_o teach_v we_o to_o deny_v it_o in_o that_o they_o teach_v we_o that_o he_o visible_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n &_o that_o he_o shall_v so_o also_o come_v again_o when_o he_o come_v from_o thence_o etc._n etc._n act._n 1.11_o especial_o see_v his_o come_n to_o judgement_n be_v call_v his_o second_o come_v heb_fw-mi 9.28_o and_o until_o the_o restitution_n of_o all_o thing_n it_o be_v say_v by_o peter_n the_o heaven_n must_v contain_v he_o act._n 3.21_o the_o euamgelist_n in_o lay_v down_o unto_o we_o the_o story_n of_o his_o nativity_n life_n &_o death_n so_o prove_v unto_o we_o that_o he_o be_v &_o be_v a_o true_a and_o perfect_a man_n encourage_v we_o also_o lest_o we_o shall_v with_o the_o marcionite_n &_o other_o heretic_n deny_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o manhood_n contant_o to_o ●●●y_v your_o real_a presence_n for_o the_o maintenance_n whereof_o you_o be_v drive_v to_o fancy_n a_o number_n of_o thing_n quite_o contrary_a to_o the_o nature_n &_o truth_n of_o his_o manhood_n and_o last_o in_o that_o recite_v the_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n they_o tell_v we_o that_o christ_n command_v that_o to_o be_v do_v in_o remembrance_n of_o he_o luke_n 22.19_o 1._o cor._n 11.24_o &_o there_o paul_n say_v v._n 26._o as_o often_o as_o you_o shall_v eat_v this_o bread_n &_o drink_v this_o cup_n you_o show_v the_o lord_n death_n till_o he_o come_v which_o word_n plain_o argu_n that_o though_o the_o sacrament_n be_v both_o right_o ministress_n receive_v yet_o it_o infer_v not_o any_o such_o real_a presence_n as_o you_o their_o imag●●_n now_o betwixt_o they_o &_o we_o we_o find_v infinite_a place_n in_o writer_n of_o all_o age_n that_o teach_v we_o still_o to_o deny_v your_o real_a presence_n but_o among_o many_o mark_v these_o for_o example_n tertullian_n in_o his_o 4._o book_n against_o martion_n interprete_v these_o word_n hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la thus_o that_o be_v to_o say_v this_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o my_o body_n augustine_n against_o adamantus_fw-la the_o manichee_n c._n 12._o write_v that_o christ_n doubt_v not_o to_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n when_o he_o give_v a_o sign_n of_o his_o body_n &_o upon_o the_o 3_o ps_n he_o say_v that_o christ_n admit_v judas_n to_o a_o banquet_n where_o he_o commend_v a_o figure_n of_o his_o body_n to_o his_o disciple_n &_o upon_o the_o 98._o ps_n he_o say_v you_o shall_v not_o eat_v this_o body_n that_o you_o see_v neither_o shall_v you_o drink_v that_o blood_n which_o they_o shall_v shed_v that_o crucify_v i_o i_o have_v commend_v unto_o you_o a_o certain_a sacrament_n it_o be_v spiritual_o understand_v will_v give_v you_o life_n in_o his_o 3._o book_n therefore_o of_o christian_a doctrine_n he_o write_v thus_o this_o say_n of_o christ_n except_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n etc._n etc._n seem_v to_o command_v a_o heinous_a thing_n &_o a_o wicked_a therefore_o it_o be_v a_o figure_n command_v we_o to_o be_v partaker_n of_o christ_n passion_n keep_v in_o our_o mind_n to_o our_o great_a profit_n &_o comfort_n that_o his_o flesh_n be_v crucify_v &_o wound_v for_o us._n c._n 16._o he_o say_v it_o be_v a_o miserable_a slavery_n of_o the_o soul_n to_o take_v the_o sign_n for_o the_o thing_n signify_v in_o the_o same_o book_n c._n 5._o and_o therefore_o in_o his_o 23._o epistle_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o similitude_n betwixt_o the_o sign_n &_o the_o thing_n signify_v be_v the_o cause_n why_o the_o one_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o the_o other_o in_o sacrament_n &_o in_o his_o 57_o question_n upon_o levitic_a he_o give_v we_o this_o rule_n the_o thing_n that_o signify_v be_v wont_a to_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o the_o thing_n which_o it_o signify_v as_o paul_n say_v the_o rock_n be_v christ_n &_o not_o it_o signify_v christ_n but_o even_o as_o it_o have_v be_v indeed_o which_o nevertheless_o be_v not_o christ_n by_o substance_n but_o by_o signification_n so_o that_o his_o usual_a doctrine_n be_v to_o teach_v we_o in_o this_o sacrament_n to_o seek_v christ_n in_o heaven_n by_o faith_n &_o thereby_o to_o make_v he_o present_a which_o otherwise_v be_v absent_a as_o you_o may_v read_v in_o his_o 50._o tract_n upon_o john_n &_o else_o where_o very_a often_o and_o with_o augustine_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o father_n consent_n in_o this_o matter_n &_o therefore_o nothing_o be_v more_o common_a with_o they_o then_o to_o call_v the_o outward_a part_n in_o this_o sacrament_n a_o sign_n figure_n similitude_n resemblance_n or_o representation_n as_o it_o appear_v in_o these_o place_n chrysostom_n in_o his_o 83._o homil_n upon_o mat._n hierom_n in_o his_o 2._o book_n against_o jovinian_a ambr._n in_o his_o 4._o book_n of_o the_o sacrament_n c._n 5._o basil_n in_o his_o lyturgy_n ephr_n in_o his_o 4._o book_n against_o the_o impugner_n of_o christ_n manhood_n by_o humane_a reason_n and_o origen_n upon_o levit_fw-la hom_n 7._o teach_v we_o that_o the_o letter_n
of_o those_o word_n except_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n etc._n etc._n kill_v &_o therefore_o he_o teach_v we_o there_o spiritual_o to_o understand_v they_o who_o upon_o these_o word_n of_o christ_n gather_v that_o no_o wicked_a man_n can_v eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n upon_o mat._n c._n 15._o as_o for_o the_o other_o part_n he_o grant_v the_o wicked_a may_v eat_v &_o that_o when_o it_o have_v be_v eat_v in_o the_o end_n it_o be_v avoid_v into_o the_o place_n of_o easement_n hom_o 15._o upon_o mat._n athanasius_n note_v the_o christ_n make_v mention_v of_o his_o ascension_n john_n 6._o to_o wtdraw_v they_o from_o corporal_a &_o fleshly_a understanding_n of_o his_o word_n upon_o these_o word_n whosoever_o speak_v a_o word_n against_o the_o son_n etc._n etc._n but_o chrys_n go_v plain_o to_o work_v &_o say_v in_o his_o 11._o hom_o upon_o mat._n that_o the_o very_a body_n of_o christ_n himself_o be_v not_o in_o the_o holy_a vessel_n but_o the_o mystery_n &_o sacrament_n thereof_o be_v therein_o contain_v and_o therefore_o in_o his_o 46._o hom._n upon_o john_n show_v we_o the_o christ_n say_v the_o flesh_n profit_v nothing_o john_n 6._o thereby_o warn_v we_o to_o take_v heed_n of_o carnal_a and_o fleshly_a understanding_n of_o his_o word_n which_o be_v to_o understand_v they_o say_v he_o simple_o and_o in_o his_o 4._o homil_n upon_o the_o 4._o to_o the_o corinth_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o carrion_n where_o the_o eagle_n will_v be_v he_o name_v eagle_n say_v he_o to_o show_v that_o who_o so_o will_v approach_v to_o his_o body_n must_v mount_v aloft_o &_o have_v no_o deal_n with_o the_o earth_n nor_o be_v draw_v downward_o but_o must_v evermore_o fly_v up_o etc._n etc._n for_o this_o be_v a_o table_n of_o eagle_n say_v he_o that_o fly_v on_o high_a &_o not_o of_o jay_n that_o creep_v beneath_o christ_n take_v bread_n which_o comfort_v man_n hart_n that_o he_o may_v represent_v thereby_o his_o body_n &_o blood_n say_v hier._n upon_o the_o 26._o of_o mat._n as_o thou_o have_v in_o baptism_n receve_v the_o similitude_n of_o death_n so_o likewise_o do_v thou_o in_o this_o sacrament_n drink_v the_o similitude_n of_o christ_n blood_n say_v ambrose_n in_o his_o 4_o book_n &_o 4_o c._n of_o the_o sacrament_n cyprian_n de_fw-fr unctione_n chrismatis_fw-la write_v thus_o christ_n in_o his_o last_o supper_n give_v unto_o his_o apostle_n bread_n &_o wine_n which_o he_o call_v his_o body_n &_o blood_n but_o on_o the_o cross_n he_o give_v his_o very_a body_n to_o be_v wound_v with_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o soldier_n that_o the_o apostle_n may_v declare_v unto_o the_o world_n how_o &_o in_o what_o manner_n the_o bread_n may_v be_v the_o flesh_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o manner_n straight_o way_n he_o declare_v thus_o that_o those_o thing_n which_o do_v signify_v &_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v signify_v by_o they_o may_v be_v both_o call_v by_o one_o name_n fulgentius_n in_o his_o book_n to_o king_n thrasimund_n have_v these_o word_n this_o cup_n or_o chalice_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n that_o be_v to_o say_v do_v signify_v the_o new_a testament_n theodoret_n in_o his_o first_o dialogue_n most_o plain_o write_v that_o christ_n honour_v the_o sign_n and_o representation_n which_o be_v see_v with_o the_o name_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n not_o change_v their_o nature_n but_o add_v grace_n to_o nature_n and_o yet_o more_o plain_o in_o the_o 2._o dialogue_n he_o write_v thus_o the_o mystical_a sign_n after_o sanctification_n go_v not_o from_o their_o nature_n for_o they_o tarry_v in_o their_o former_a substance_n figure_n and_o form_n yea_o even_a gelasius_n a_o pope_n about_o the_o year_n 500_o against_o eutiches_n be_v as_o plain_a say_v in_o the_o eucharist_n the_o substance_n and_o nature_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n cease_v not_o for_o the_o image_n and_o similitude_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n be_v celebrate_v in_o those_o mystery_n and_o bertram_n in_o his_o treatise_n of_o this_o matter_n write_v in_o the_o time_n of_o carolus_n caluus_fw-la labour_v by_o many_o proof_n &_o testimony_n to_o show_v that_o bread_n and_o wine_n remain_v still_o and_o that_o we_o be_v here_o to_o follow_v christ_n in_o a_o figure_n and_o mystery_n and_o bede_n upon_o luke_n 22._o say_v because_o bread_n do_v comfort_n man_n heart_n and_o wine_n do_v make_v good_a blood_n in_o his_o body_n therefore_o the_o bread_n be_v mystical_o compare_v to_o christ_n body_n and_o the_o wine_n to_o christ_n blood_n the_o like_a say_n have_v haymo_n in_o his_o 5._o book_n de_fw-fr sermonum_fw-la proprietate_fw-la emissenus_fw-la de_fw-fr consecrat_fw-mi dist_n 2._o cap._n quia_fw-la corpus_fw-la compare_v the_o conversion_n in_o the_o sacrament_n to_o the_o conversion_n in_o a_o man_n regenerate_v which_o we_o all_o know_v be_v in_o quality_n and_o not_o in_o substance_n there_o be_v two_o epistle_n yet_o extant_a in_o the_o saxon_a tongue_n make_v by_o one_o alfricke_n in_o king_n etheldreds_n time_n about_o the_o year_n of_o the_o lord_n 996_o be_v then_o as_o some_o write_v bishop_n of_o canterbury_n wherein_o he_o teach_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n to_o be_v no_o otherwise_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n than_o manna_n and_o the_o water_n of_o the_o rock_n be_v christ_n who_o also_o translate_v 80_o sermon_n out_o of_o latin_a into_o the_o saxon_a tongue_n whereof_o 24._o be_v appoint_v to_o be_v read_v for_o homily_n and_o in_o that_o which_o be_v to_o be_v read_v on_o easter_n day_n there_o be_v much_o direct_a matter_n against_o transubstantiation_n and_o your_o real_a presence_n and_o since_o these_o time_n you_o know_v well_o enough_o we_o have_v have_v many_o from_o time_n to_o time_n yea_o mo_z they_o you_o well_o like_a of_o that_o have_v be_v as_o flat_a and_o direct_a against_o your_o kind_n of_o real_a presence_n as_o we_o be_v now_o this_o master_n fox_n book_n of_o act_n and_o monument_n have_v make_v evident_a to_o all_o the_o world_n and_o it_o be_v famous_o know_v that_o before_o your_o lateran_n council_n under_o innocent_a the_o 3._o in_o the_o year_n 1215._o it_o be_v not_o decree_v to_o be_v as_o you_o now_o hold_v it_o appear_v also_o by_o the_o last_o session_n of_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n which_o be_v not_o much_o above_o 140._o year_n ago_o that_o the_o greek_a church_n until_o then_o stand_v against_o your_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n which_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o your_o real_a presence_n and_o tonstall_n though_o otherwise_o a_o great_a man_n on_o your_o side_n yet_o in_o his_o book_n of_o this_o sacrament_n say_v perhaps_o it_o have_v be_v better_a to_o leave_v every_o man_n that_o will_v be_v curious_a concern_v this_o matter_n of_o the_o manner_n how_o christ_n be_v present_a to_o his_o own_o conjecture_n as_o by_o his_o confession_n before_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n it_o be_v leave_v at_o liberty_n and_o john_n duns_n a_o friend_n of_o you_o upon_o the_o 4._o book_n of_o the_o sentence_n say_v that_o the_o word_n may_v have_v be_v expound_v more_o plain_o then_o by_o transubstantiation_n if_o it_o have_v please_v the_o church_n gabriel_n biell_n another_o great_a doctor_n upon_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n in_o his_o 40._o read_v plain_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v not_o express_v in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o bible_n how_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v there_o whither_o by_o transubstantiation_n or_o consubstantiation_n even_o so_o your_o great_a bishop_n john_n fisher_n write_v against_o luther_n book_n of_o the_o captivity_n of_o babylon_n be_v enforce_v to_o confess_v that_o he_o find_v not_o in_o matthew_n nor_o any_o where_o else_o in_o the_o scripture_n any_o thing_n to_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v thereby_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n in_o your_o mass_n nor_o that_o whensoever_o a_o priest_n shall_v go_v about_o that_o matter_n he_o make_v the_o bread_n &_o wine_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o conclude_v that_o he_o think_v that_o every_o man_n understand_v that_o the_o certainty_n of_o that_o matter_n depend_v not_o so_o much_o of_o the_o gospel_n as_o it_o do_v upon_o the_o use_n tradition_n and_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n these_o testimony_n forasmuch_o as_o direct_o they_o be_v against_o your_o literal_a exposition_n of_o christ_n word_n your_o new_a devise_n of_o transubstantiation_n the_o only_a pillar_n and_o buttress_n of_o your_o real_a presence_n and_o against_o your_o gross_a and_o carnal_a eat_n of_o he_o with_o the_o bodily_a mouth_n of_o all_o receiver_n good_a and_o bad_a they_o may_v not_o be_v deny_v to_o be_v forcible_a against_o your_o real_a presence_n for_o the_o cause_n thereof_o deny_v and_o take_v away_o the_o effect_n must_v cease_v and_o if_o the_o
altar_n and_o the_o leaf_n of_o the_o other_o scatter_v all_o over_o the_o church_n whereupon_o adrian_n the_o pope_n like_o a_o profound_a interpreter_n of_o vision_n gather_v that_o it_o be_v the_o lord_n mean_v thereby_o to_o show_v that_o s._n ambroses_n lyturgy_n may_v well_o be_v use_v upon_o his_o own_o altar_n at_o milan_n but_o the_o other_o shall_v be_v use_v general_o over_o all_o church_n and_o thus_o the_o credit_n of_o saint_n gregory_n mass_n be_v first_o establish_v howbeit_o before_o transubstantiation_n come_v in_o which_o be_v not_o as_o i_o have_v say_v before_o the_o year_n 1215_o it_o be_v nothing_o the_o minion_n that_o it_o have_v be_v since_o and_o yet_o even_o then_o it_o be_v not_o grow_v to_o her_o high_a credit_n for_o about_o five_o year_n after_o it_o be_v ere_o that_o adoration_n or_o elevation_n of_o the_o host_n be_v decree_v for_o than_o first_o honorius_n the_o 3_o enact_v that_o and_o the_o host_n holiday_n common_o call_v corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la day_n be_v not_o make_v before_o pope_n urban_n time_n in_o the_o year_n 1260._o as_o witness_v polydore_n in_o his_o 6_o book_n and_o 8_o chapter_n of_o the_o inventour_n of_o thing_n whereupon_o it_o may_v evident_o appear_v that_o the_o mass_n as_o it_o be_v now_o be_v but_o a_o very_a youngling_n and_o one_o of_o her_o father_n the_o pope_n young_a daughter_n and_o as_o for_o latin_a service_n her_o companion_n it_o be_v first_o bring_v into_o england_n by_o one_o theodorus_n send_v hither_o by_o pope_n vitellian_a about_o the_o year_n 657._o and_o to_o proceed_v to_o other_o point_n of_o popery_n as_o it_o be_v well_o know_v it_o be_v a_o other_o most_o principal_a point_n of_o your_o religion_n to_o attribute_v unto_o the_o pope_n that_o universal_a supremacy_n over_o all_o bishop_n and_o over_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n that_o you_o do_v for_o you_o have_v make_v it_o a_o article_n under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n to_o be_v receive_v that_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n but_o under_o his_o obedience_n and_o within_o his_o communion_n as_o it_o be_v set_v down_o by_o boniface_n the_o 8_o in_o his_o extravagant_a de_fw-fr maioritate_fw-la &_o obedientiâ_fw-la and_o yet_o in_o the_o 6_o canon_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n hold_v about_o the_o year_n 330._o as_o some_o count_n it_o appear_v that_o then_o the_o roman_a bishop_n have_v his_o bound_n and_o limit_n prescribe_v he_o aswell_o as_o the_o other_o patriarch_n and_o the_o general_a council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o the_o 6._o general_a council_n hold_v at_o constantinople_n determine_v can._n 36._o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o see_v shall_v have_v equal_a privilege_n with_o the_o bishop_n of_o old_a rome_n 680_o year_n after_o christ_n and_o appeal_v to_o rome_n be_v forbid_v under_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n in_o the_o council_n of_o milevitan_n cap._n 22._o and_o of_o africa_n cap._n 92._o further_o yet_o your_o own_o proper_a and_o late_a counsel_n of_o constance_n and_o basil_n have_v not_o long_o ago_o great_o curtol_v the_o supremacy_n that_o now_o the_o pope_n chalength_n for_o they_o have_v decree_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o general_a council_n be_v so_o far_o above_o he_o that_o thereby_o he_o may_v be_v condemn_v and_o depose_v and_o though_o now_o according_a to_o your_o canon_n dist_n 40._o cap._n si_fw-la papa_n your_o pope_n will_v be_v lawless_a &_o may_v not_o by_o any_o be_v control_v though_o be_v lead_v people_n headlong_o by_o heap_n to_o hell_n as_o it_o be_v there_o set_v down_o yet_o i_o read_v that_o in_o pope_n symachus_n time_n about_o the_o year_n 500_o after_o christ_n that_o many_o bishop_n do_v accuse_v he_o then_o to_o theodoricus_n king_n of_o the_o goth_n because_o he_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v one_o who_o will_n shall_v be_v a_o law_n and_o in_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n the_o th●●_n there_o be_v a_o decree_n make_v cap._n 26._o against_o sundry_a ambitious_a 〈◊〉_d challenge_v even_o then_o as_o it_o shall_v seem_v to_o be_v due_a unto_o the_o bishop●_n of_o rome_n as_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v call_v prince_n of_o priest_n 〈…〉_o pry_v but_o bishop_n of_o the_o first_o see_v and_o howsoever_o now_o ho●ius_n belarmine_n and_o other_o reckon_v the_o title_n of_o ecumenicall_a or_o universal_a bishop_n among_o the_o due_a and_o just_a title_n of_o the_o pope_n yet_o it_o be_v flat_o set_v down_o as_o a_o thing_n unlawful_a and_o be_v forbid_v in_o the_o 99_o distinct●●●_n 〈◊〉_d by_o the_o judgement_n of_o pelagius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o year_n 58●●_n by_o gregory_n the_o first_o his_o successor_n and_o it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o gregory_n very_o direct_o and_o often_o conden_v this_o title_n both_o in_o john_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n and_o in_o all_o other_o bishop_n himself_o and_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n not_o except_v as_o it_o be_v evident_a in_o his_o 4_o book_n of_o epistle_n epi._n 30_o 38.88_o &_o in_o his_o 9_o book_n ep._n 45._o your_o set_a day_n of_o fast_v you_o learned_a of_o montanus_n &_o your_o place_v so_o necessary_a a_o point_n of_o fast_v in_o abstinence_n from_o flesh_n of_o the_o manichee_n as_o it_o appear_v in_o aug._n 74._o epist_n wherein_o you_o be_v as_o deep_a as_o either_o they_o or_o any_o other_o heretic_n ever_o be_v witness_v your_o own_o dur._n li._n 6._o c._n de_fw-fr ieiuniis_fw-la for_o he_o there_o give_v this_o as_o a_o reason_n why_o in_o fast_a flesh_n be_v rather_o abstain_v from_o then_o fish_n because_o all_o flesh_n be_v accurse_v and_o not_o all_o fish_n in_o the_o day_n of_o noe._n and_o compare_n augustine_n description_n of_o the_o manichee_n fast_n with_o you_o in_o his_o 2_o book_n de_fw-fr moribus_fw-la manicheorun_n cap._n 13._o and_o you_o shall_v find_v they_o marvelous_a like_o further_n what_o holiness_n soever_o you_o imagine_v to_o be_v in_o your_o forbid_v your_o clergy_n marriage_n and_o how_o ancient_a soever_o you_o will_v persuade_v the_o simple_a and_o ignorant_a that_o that_o order_n be_v any_o man_n may_v see_v that_o read_v augustine_n foresay_v 74_o epistle_n &_o his_o 18_o chapter_n of_o his_o second_o book_n de_fw-fr moribus_fw-la manicheorum_fw-la as_o the_o manichee_n &_o tatimist_n learned_a to_o condemn_v marriage_n as_o they_o do_v of_o the_o ethnic_n as_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n think_v they_o do_v stromat_n 3_o so_o you_o have_v learn_v this_o your_o kind_n of_o forbid_v your_o clergy_n as_o you_o call_v they_o marriage_n of_o they_o for_o there_o it_o appear_v that_o they_o allow_v it_o among_o their_o ordinary_a hearer_n &_o forbid_v it_o only_o to_o those_o that_o study_a perfection_n and_o be_v the_o choose_v once_o to_o the_o ministry_n among_o they_o even_o as_o you_o do_v but_o whatsoever_o either_o you_o or_o they_o say_v or_o have_v say_v to_o the_o contrary_a for_o the_o justify_n of_o this_o your_o antichristian_a devise_n as_o it_o be_v most_o clear_a to_o any_o that_o read_v but_o the_o old_a testament_n that_o marriage_n be_v as_o allowable_a to_o the_o lord_n priest_n then_o and_o as_o honourable_a account_v both_o of_o god_n and_o good_a man_n so_o 〈◊〉_d less_o clear_o do_v it_o appear_v in_o the_o new_a 1._o cor._n 9_o &_o 1_o tim._n 3._o that_o the_o like_a opinion_n be_v retain_v both_o of_o the_o honorablenes_n and_o lawfulness_n thereof_o for_o apostle_n evangelist_n and_o all_o other_o minister_n of_o the_o lord_n insomuch_o that_o paul_n in_o the_o first_o of_o these_o place_n howsoever_o you_o papist_n seek_v to_o hide_v his_o plain_a meaning_n disorder_n his_o word_n &_o read_v a_o woman_n a_o sister_n for_o a_o sister_n a_o wife_n show_v not_o only_o how_o the_o brethren_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o cephas_n carry_v their_o christian_a wife_n up_o and_o down_o with_o they_o but_o that_o also_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o they_o so_o to_o due_a &_o to_o take_v maintenance_n where_o they_o preach_v for_o themselves_o &_o they_o &_o that_o he_o &_o barnabas_n if_o they_o list_v may_v lawful_o even_o do_v so_o also_o insomuch_o that_o s._n paul_n 1._o tim._n 4_o do_v flat_o advouch_v the_o denial_n or_o forbid_v thereof_o not_o only_o as_o the_o manichee_n &_o some_o other_o heretic_n have_v forbid_v it_o as_o a_o filthy_a &_o unlawful_a estate_n in_o itself_o with_o yet_o if_o your_o own_o report_n be_v true_a be_v siritius_n opinion_n do_v 82_o &_o be_v still_o gregory_n martin_n discou_fw-mi ca._n 11._o but_o even_o as_o the_o wise_a of_o you_o defend_v now_o the_o deny_v of_o it_o to_o your_o clergy_n under_o the_o pretence_n of_o more_o holiness_n in_o abstain_v there_o from_o for_o a_o plain_a doctrine_n of_o devil_n for_o especial_o he_o speak_v of_o they_o there_o that_o shall_v in_o the_o late_a day_n do_v so_o in_o
their_o doctrine_n be_v not_o new_a for_o when_o they_o begin_v to_o preach_v unto_o the_o gentiles_n &_o idolater_n 9_o idolater_n for_o the_o 9_o they_o do_v not_o at_o the_o first_o preach_v jesus_n christ_n but_o they_o do_v seek_v to_o blot_v out_o of_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o simple_a people_n the_o foolish_a opinion_n that_o they_o have_v in_o the_o multitude_n of_o god_n &_o to_o teach_v they_o that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n who_o have_v create_v the_o heaven_n &_o earth_n who_o send_v rain_n in_o time_n of_o need_n &_o all_o thing_n else_o that_o be_v require_v for_o the_o sustenance_n of_o man_n wonder_n man_n this_o he_o preach_v but_o this_o be_v not_o all_o &_o therefore_o he_o preach_v somewhat_o that_o be_v new_a both_o to_o jew_n and_o gentile_n namely_o that_o jesus_n be_v the_o christ_n therefore_o in_o that_o respect_n he_o &_o his_o fellow_n have_v need_v to_o confirm_v their_o doctrine_n by_o sign_n and_o wonder_n this_o be_v the_o doctrine_n that_o s._n paul_n do_v preach_v as_o we_o read_v in_o the_o 14._o the_o act._n 14._o acts._n this_o doctrine_n be_v not_o new_a among_o man_n although_o it_o be_v so_o that_o they_o be_v painim_n thereof_o painim_n and_o therefore_o you_o bestow_v much_o needless_a cost_n to_o prove_v this_o point_n no_o new_a doctrine_n touch_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o godheade_n and_o the_o verity_n thereof_o for_o not_o only_o in_o moses_n law_n nor_o in_o the_o law_n of_o grace_n but_o even_o by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n god_n have_v be_v know_v even_o of_o those_o which_o be_v not_o of_o the_o family_n of_o abraham_n isaac_n &_o jacob_n unto_o who_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o incarnation_n of_o christ_n be_v make_v of_o this_o do_v abimilech_n the_o king_n of_o gerar_n bear_v witness_n who_o do_v excuse_v himself_o before_o god_n for_o the_o wife_n of_o abraham_n he_o can_v never_o have_v know_v how_o to_o talk_v thus_o with_o god_n if_o he_o have_v not_o know_v he_o 20._o he_o gen._n 20._o beside_o this_o he_o make_v abraham_n to_o swear_v by_o the_o invocation_n of_o the_o say_v god_n that_o neither_o he_o nor_o his_o heir_n shall_v suffer_v any_o damage_n by_o his_o posterity_n 24._o posterity_n gen._n 24._o bathuel_n do_v likewise_o know_v god_n when_o he_o confess_v that_o he_o be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o marriage_n of_o his_o daughter_n with_o abraham_n son_n even_o so_o abimilech_n the_o king_n of_o the_o palestine_n &_o phicol_n &_o ochosath_n say_v unto_o isaac_n we_o hear_v that_o god_n be_v with_o thou_o &_o therefore_o we_o be_v come_v to_o make_v alliance_n together_o 2._o together_o m_o judg._n 2._o adonibeze_v although_o he_o be_v a_o gentile_a do_v not_o he_o confess_v one_o god_n say_v god_n judg._n the_o first_o you_o will_v say_v when_o he_o say_v that_o he_o have_v give_v he_o the_o selfsame_o punishment_n that_o he_o have_v give_v the_o .70_o king_n job_n &_o all_o his_o friend_n although_o they_o be_v gentile_n have_v avouch_v one_o god_n to_o be_v the_o creator_n of_o heaven_n &_o earth_n even_o aswell_o as_o the_o israelite_n as_o it_o do_v appear_v by_o the_o discourse_n of_o the_o say_v job._n if_o we_o read_v the_o history_n of_o the_o paynim_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o they_o bear_v witness_n of_o one_o god_n among_o themselves_o diogenes_n laertius_n ●_o the_o life_n of_o the_o philosopher_n do_v write_v that_o the_o emperor_n adrian_n do_v demand_v of_o a_o philosopher_n cell_v secundus_fw-la what_o god_n be_v he_o answer_v god_n be_v a_o immortal_a spirit_n incomprehensible_a contain_v all_o the_o world_n a_o light_n and_o a_o sovereign_a goodness_n true_a it_o be_v that_o this_o secundus_fw-la be_v bold_a to_o speak_v of_o god_n than_o another_o philosopher_n call_v simonides_n of_o who_o tully_n do_v write_v in_o his_o first_o book_n de_fw-fr naturâ_fw-la deorum_fw-la unto_o who_o when_o the_o tyrant_n hiero_n do_v demand_v of_o he_o what_o god_n be_v &_o that_o he_o have_v give_v he_o diverse_a day_n of_o respuit_fw-la to_o answer_v he_o at_o the_o last_o he_o say_v that_o he_o do_v acknowledge_v in_o he_o a_o infinite_a of_o all_o thing_n cicero_n himself_o in_o the_o first_o question_n of_o his_o tusculan_n do_v govern_v &_o give_v the_o be_v to_o all_o thing_n and_o in_o diverse_a place_n of_o that_o work_n he_o do_v well_o express_v that_o he_o know_v well_o that_o there_o be_v one_o god_n and_o that_o the_o god_n that_o the_o gentile_n do_v worship_n be_v but_o mortal_a man_n and_o in_o the_o say_v book_n he_o say_v that_o we_o know_v god_n by_o his_o work_n in_o the_o which_o he_o do_v not_o much_o differ_v from_o david_n say_v 18._o say_v psal_n 18._o that_o the_o heaven_n declare_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o the_o firmament_n do_v anounce_v his_o work_n and_o in_o the_o 40._o chapter_n of_o esay_n when_o god_n do_v talk_v with_o the_o gentile_n he_o do_v call_v his_o work_n to_o bear_v witness_n of_o his_o greatness_n lift_v up_o your_o eye_n say_v he_o and_o behold_v who_o have_v make_v this_o and_o the_o 13_o the_o sap._n 13_o sage_n do_v say_v that_o man_n through_o their_o vanity_n have_v not_o know_v god_n by_o his_o work_n and_o 1._o and_o rom._n 1._o saint_n paul_n do_v absolute_o condemn_v they_o say_v that_o they_o can_v procure_v no_o excuse_n of_o ignorance_n for_o the_o invisible_a thing_n such_o as_o be_v the_o divinity_n of_o god_n may_v be_v know_v by_o the_o visible_a thing_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v unexcusable_a have_v hide_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n to_o unjustice_n for_o after_o that_o they_o have_v know_v he_o they_o have_v not_o give_v he_o that_o thanks_n and_o honour_n that_o they_o shall_v have_v do_v but_o they_o have_v be_v deceive_v through_o their_o own_o subtility_n &_o make_v a_o profession_n of_o knowledge_n they_o have_v be_v find_v foolish_a and_o ignorant_a s._n augustine_n 8._o lib._n de_fw-fr ciu._n dei_fw-la cap._n 24._o do_v reckon_v mercurius_n call_v hermes_n trimegistus_fw-la among_o these_o forasmuch_o as_o he_o do_v continue_v in_o his_o own_o error_n although_o he_o know_v by_o that_o that_o one_o may_v see_v in_o his_o own_o write_n that_o his_o ancestor_n do_v err_v great_o in_o the_o make_n and_o worship_v of_o so_o many_o go_n the_o xviii_o chapter_n indeed_o even_o as_o you_o suppose_v in_o this_o case_n we_o further_o answer_v you_o as_o the_o jew_n be_v answer_v by_o christ_n tell_v you_o that_o you_o be_v a_o adulterous_a and_o perverse_a generation_n in_o thus_o demand_v sign_n to_o confirm_v a_o doctrine_n already_o of_o ancient_a time_n sufficient_o confirm_v but_o this_o answer_n you_o say_v can_v be_v just_o make_v to_o you_o because_o neither_o we_o be_v faithful_a messenger_n from_o god_n as_o christ_n be_v nor_o you_o so_o hard_o heart_a as_o these_o jew_n be_v truth_n it_o be_v we_o dare_v not_o compare_v in_o faithfulness_n with_o christ_n for_o such_o comparison_n be_v odious_a but_o with_o s._n paul_n we_o protest_v that_o in_o serve_v the_o god_n of_o our_o father_n according_a to_o that_o religion_n which_o you_o count_v heresy_n believe_v all_o that_o be_v write_v in_o the_o law_n &_o the_o prophet_n we_o have_v always_o endeavour_v to_o keep_v a_o good_a conscience_n both_o before_o god_n and_o man_n act._n 24._o and_o as_o for_o you_o we_o see_v no_o cause_n to_o the_o contrary_a but_o that_o you_o may_v both_o for_o malice_n against_o the_o truth_n and_o hard_a heartedness_n be_v compare_v with_o the_o jew_n for_o though_o we_o work_v no_o miracle_n and_o they_o then_o have_v see_v christ_n to_o work_v many_o yet_o our_o doctrine_n be_v the_o same_o that_o he_o teach_v and_o no_o other_o as_o we_o be_v always_o ready_a and_o willing_a to_o prove_v it_o to_o be_v by_o the_o scripture_n it_o have_v be_v confirm_v not_o only_o by_o all_o the_o miracle_n that_o then_o christ_n have_v wrought_v but_o also_o by_o all_o they_o that_o since_o be_v wrought_v by_o he_o or_o his_o apostle_n to_o confirm_v the_o same_o and_o therefore_o you_o yet_o refuse_v to_o believe_v it_o show_v as_o great_a hardness_n of_o hart_n as_o they_o do_v &_o rather_o more_o indeed_o if_o we_o take_v upon_o we_o either_o any_o calling_n not_o warrant_v by_o the_o lord_n in_o his_o word_n or_o to_o preach_v any_o doctrine_n which_o we_o can_v not_o warrant_v by_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n you_o may_v with_o some_o reason_n call_v for_o some_o miracle_n of_o we_o but_o see_v you_o can_v prove_v neither_o of_o these_o against_o we_o you_o may_v with_o more_o reason_n give_v over_o this_o objection_n then_o to_o pursue_v it_o any_o further_o indeed_o we_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o confess_v that_o these_o be_v two_o principal_a reason_n which_o be_v here_o remember_v by_o you_o whereby_o we_o prove_v
by_o the_o scripture_n ill_o understand_v for_o 16._o for_o mat._n 10._o &_o 16._o our_o saviour_n do_v say_v that_o for_o to_o be_v his_o disciple_n we_o must_v forsake_v and_o renounce_v all_o that_o we_o have_v in_o testimony_n of_o the_o which_o the_o first_o christian_n at_o jerusalem_n do_v sell_v all_o their_o possession_n and_o present_v the_o money_n of_o they_o to_o the_o apostle_n to_o give_v to_o the_o poor_a and_o that_o that_o be_v worse_a the_o adamite_n do_v maintain_v a_o great_a error_n than_o this_o and_o more_o brutish_a the_o which_o be_v that_o all_o man_n wife_n shall_v be_v common_a and_o they_o do_v call_v this_o the_o true_a gospel_n and_o the_o pure_a word_n of_o god_n allege_v for_o it_o the_o first_o and_o eight_o of_o genelis_n where_o god_n do_v say_v increase_v and_o multiply_v and_o replenish_v the_o earth_n if_o you_o do_v say_v that_o this_o be_v a_o foolish_a opinion_n i_o confess_v it_o to_o be_v so_o but_o that_o you_o that_o this_o be_v false_a that_o church_n condemn_v popery_n for_o this_o heresy_n zisca_n hus_n and_o their_o follower_n condemn_v before_o you_o very_a church_n which_o have_v condemn_v this_o heresy_n of_o they_o do_v likewise_o condemn_v you_o when_o the_o devil_n determine_v to_o fight_v with_o christ_n he_o think_v he_o can_v not_o wise_a aid_n himself_o so_o well_o as_o with_o the_o holy_a scripture_n persuade_v he_o that_o the_o best_a way_n for_o he_o to_o show_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v to_o break_v his_o neck_n cast_v himself_o down_o from_o the_o pinnacle_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o he_o do_v allege_v this_o text_n say_v 90._o say_v psal_n 90._o as_o it_o be_v write_v that_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n shall_v so_o preserve_v he_o that_o he_o shall_v not_o hurt_v his_o foot_n against_o the_o stone_n follow_v that_o david_n say_v and_o if_o i_o shall_v go_v about_o to_o write_v all_o the_o place_n of_o scripture_n that_o the_o heretic_n have_v allege_v to_o maintain_v their_o horrible_a error_n i_o think_v sure_o i_o may_v make_v a_o big_a book_n than_o the_o bible_n the_o xxiii_o chapter_n if_o scripture_n if_o o_o you_o be_v your_o craft_n master_n a_o man_n may_v see_v in_o wrong_n allege_v the_o scripture_n that_o the_o son_n do_v hate_v the_o father_n or_o the_o father_n the_o son_n or_o if_o the_o wife_n do_v hate_v the_o husband_n or_o the_o husband_n the_o wife_n they_o may_v take_v the_o word_n of_o god_n ill_o understand_v to_o defend_v their_o cause_n for_o he_o do_v command_v we_o that_o we_o shall_v hate_v those_o that_o be_v near_a unto_o we_o as_o under_o the_o pain_n of_o not_o enter_v into_o paradise_n if_o we_o do_v contrary_a but_o this_o aught_o to_o be_v understand_v that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o prefer_v the_o love_n of_o any_o creature_n how_o near_o soever_o they_o be_v to_o we_o before_o the_o love_n of_o god_n in_o like_a manner_n he_o that_o will_v say_v that_o we_o shall_v not_o eat_v of_o the_o blood_n of_o those_o beast_n that_o be_v smother_v he_o may_v soon_o allege_v the_o scripture_n for_o it_o which_o do_v say_v that_o at_o the_o council_n that_o the_o apostle_n hold_v at_o jerusalem_n be_v present_a the_o holy_a ghost_n this_o ordinance_n be_v make_v as_o we_o read_v in_o the._n 15._o chapter_n of_o the_o act_n and_o if_o that_o one_o shall_v take_v in_o hand_n to_o bring_v all_o the_o place_n of_o scripture_n that_o the_o heretic_n have_v allege_v to_o maintain_v their_o opinion_n i_o dare_v bold_o say_v that_o he_o shall_v find_v it_o a_o endless_a piece_n of_o work_n for_o among_o so_o great_a a_o number_n of_o false_a prophet_n there_o have_v be_v very_o few_o or_o almost_o none_o but_o they_o have_v seek_v to_o maintain_v their_o opinion_n by_o scripture_n draw_v the_o place_n as_o it_o be_v by_o violence_n to_o a_o deprave_a and_o a_o corrupt_a sense_n be_v this_o the_o manner_n of_o interpret_n of_o the_o scripture_n call_v at_o this_o day_n the_o pure_a word_n of_o god_n by_o those_o that_o have_v profess_v to_o be_v as_o long_o as_o they_o live_v enemy_n to_o the_o truth_n book_n truth_n you_o shall_v have_v say_v in_o his_o first_o come_v &_o 2_o book_n the_o learned_a and_o ancient_a doctor_n epiphanius_n in_o his_o first_o book_n against_o heresy_n do_v allege_v as_o touch_v this_o matter_n a_o very_a familiar_a example_n say_v that_o if_o some_o good_a carver_n have_v make_v the_o image_n of_o a_o king_n adorn_v with_o many_o jewel_n and_o precious_a stone_n and_o that_o another_o shall_v come_v afterward_o and_o shall_v take_v the_o same_o jewel_n and_o precious_a stone_n and_o make_v with_o they_o the_o image_n of_o a_o fox_n or_o a_o dog_n and_o that_o he_o shall_v say_v behold_v here_o be_v the_o image_n of_o a_o king_n will_v not_o every_o body_n laugh_v he_o to_o scorn_n and_o say_v that_o he_o do_v it_o in_o mockery_n or_o else_o that_o he_o be_v mad_a yes_o sure_o for_o although_o they_o be_v the_o same_o jewel_n and_o that_o very_a stuff_n wherewith_o be_v make_v the_o image_n of_o the_o king_n yet_o because_o that_o this_o other_o workman_n have_v take_v they_o away_o and_o fashion_v they_o after_o another_o sort_n it_o ought_v no_o more_o to_o be_v call_v the_o image_n of_o a_o king_n but_o the_o picture_n of_o a_o fox_n or_o a_o dog_n even_o thus_o be_v it_o with_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o be_v leave_v we_o by_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n for_o to_o paint_v in_o rich_a colour_n the_o image_n of_o the_o great_a king_n of_o glory_n therewith_o glory_n this_o be_v even_o your_o ow●e_a deal_n with_o the_o scripture_n up_o &_o down_o when_o you_o will_v confirm_v popery_n therewith_o but_o see_v that_o you_o take_v those_o precious_a stone_n from_o the_o image_n of_o this_o king_n and_o do_v appropriate_v they_o unto_o the_o image_n of_o a_o fox_n make_v they_o serve_v to_o cloak_n your_o heresy_n withal_o it_o ought_v no_o more_o to_o be_v call_v the_o word_n of_o god_n nor_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o the_o word_n of_o man_n &_o false_a doctrine_n and_o therefore_o if_o you_o will_v have_v it_o to_o bear_v the_o first_o name_n you_o must_v set_v it_o in_o the_o first_o estate_n that_o be_v to_o say_v spirit_n say_v this_o be_v certain_a and_o therefore_o scripture_n trust_v interpret_v scripture_n and_o not_o your_o romish_a spirit_n that_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v interpret_v by_o he_o that_o do_v first_o indite_v it_o it_o be_v not_o by_o the_o will_n of_o man_n say_v s._n peter_n epist_n 2._o ca._n 1._o that_o the_o prophecy_n be_v bring_v but_o by_o the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o holy_a person_n have_v speak_v etc._n etc._n i_o know_v well_o that_o you_o attribute_v the_o intelligence_n of_o the_o scripture_n unto_o your_o synagogue_n us._n synagogue_n this_o we_o do_v not_o take_v upon_o us._n but_o how_o shall_v we_o believe_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v dwell_v more_o in_o you_o they_o in_o all_o the_o universal_a church_n which_o have_v continue_v from_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n until_o this_o time_n i_o pray_v do_v so_o much_o as_o answer_v i_o if_o you_o my_o master_n be_v the_o lodging_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n judge_n ghost_n whither_o our_o allege_v of_o they_o agree_v or_o not_o with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n itself_o speak_v in_o the_o scripture_n we_o be_v content_v to_o let_v always_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n judge_n where_o do_v he_o make_v his_o residence_n before_o you_o be_v bear_v i_o know_v already_o your_o answer_n the_o which_o be_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o faithful_a and_o where_o be_v those_o faithful_a marry_o where_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v answer_v thus_o still_o &_o you_o shall_v be_v sure_a that_o you_o shall_v not_o be_v overtake_v for_o it_o be_v as_o good_a as_o to_o play_v handie_n dandie_a &_o soye_n shall_v accomplish_v the_o old_a proverb_n the_o which_o say_v it_o be_v as_o far_o from_o dover_n to_o caleis_n as_o from_o caleis_n to_o dover_n but_o to_o the_o end_n that_o all_o the_o world_n may_v see_v the_o great_a hazard_n of_o eternal_a damnation_n that_o those_o run_v into_o that_o be_v so_o ready_a to_o believe_v every_o body_n think_v that_o they_o be_v assure_v of_o their_o health_n forasmuch_o as_o those_o that_o seduce_v they_o say_v behold_v there_o be_v the_o scripture_n it_o be_v the_o pure_a word_n of_o god_n &_o the_o very_a gospel_n i_o will_v set_v forth_o some_o heresy_n that_o have_v be_v in_o time_n past_o condemn_v by_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o which_o notwithstanding_o have_v be_v do_v be_v this_o you_o can_v never_o do_v aswell_o yea_o &_o more_o large_o confirm_v by_o scripture_n than_o you_o can_v confirm_v any_o of_o you_o
disgrace_n canus_n may_v term_v they_o a_o dead_a judge_n which_o can_v neither_o hear_v nor_o speak_v in_o his_o chapter_n &_o book_n before_o name_v &_o in_o like_a sort_n other_o in_o the_o follow_n of_o this_o comparison_n with_o your_o good_a allowance_n shall_v &_o may_v call_v they_o incken_fw-mi divinity_n &_o what_o else_o they_o listen_v as_o we_o often_o have_v show_v you_o and_z they_o the_o only_a rest_n upon_o they_o scripture_n man_n or_o man_n who_o religion_n and_o divinity_n lie_v in_o rag_n &_o skin_n of_o beast_n because_o of_o such_o thing_n the_o book_n be_v make_v wherein_o they_o be_v contain_v many_o beastly_a &_o blasphemous_a speech_n and_o assertion_n thus_o tend_v to_o the_o disgrace_n of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n any_o man_n that_o listen_v may_v find_v lyndans_fw-la three_o first_o book_n of_o his_o panoply_n hosius_n book_n de_fw-fr expresso_fw-la dei_fw-la verbo_fw-la &_o his_o triple_a dialogue_n cusan_o 2._o epist_n ad_fw-la bohemos_n &_o 7._o andradius_fw-la florebellꝰ_n priereas_n &_o almost_o all_o your_o famous_a writer_n of_o these_o late_a day_n every_o where_o full_a oft_o where_o they_o have_v any_o occasion_n to_o weaken_v those_o argument_n that_o we_o use_v against_o you_o either_o for_o that_o you_o be_v in_o your_o position_n wherein_o we_o dissent_v from_o you_o without_o warrant_n of_o scripture_n or_o that_o they_o be_v contrary_a to_o scripture_n and_o when_o we_o urge_v you_o that_o of_o what_o credit_n soever_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n be_v that_o you_o so_o plead_v for_o yet_o if_o it_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n aswell_o as_o the_o scripture_n than_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o it_o agree_v with_o the_o scripture_n &_o be_v not_o contrary_a unto_o it_o for_o as_o much_o as_o god_n be_v always_o one_o &_o selfsame_o and_o therefore_o always_o agree_v with_o himself_o &_o therefore_o press_v you_o with_o that_o which_o by_o the_o word_n &_o circumstance_n of_o the_o text_n of_o the_o scripture_n we_o be_v sure_o be_v the_o true_a sense_n thereof_o &_o therefore_o the_o undoubted_a word_n of_o god_n they_o you_o even_o the_o great_a of_o you_o be_v drive_v to_o these_o poor_a &_o base_a shift_n to_o cry_v out_o with_o cardinal_n hosius_n in_o his_o 4._o book_n against_o brentius_n &_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr expresso_fw-la dei_fw-la verbo_fw-la before_o name_v that_o scripture_n as_o it_o be_v allege_v of_o catholic_n it_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o as_o it_o be_v allege_v of_o heretic_n the_o express_a word_n of_o the_o devil_n or_o as_o he_o say_v also_o in_o the_o late_a book_n if_o any_o have_v the_o exposition_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n of_o any_o place_n of_o scripture_n although_o he_o neither_o know_v nor_o understand_v whither_o &_o how_o it_o agree_v with_o the_o word_n of_o the_o scripture_n yet_o he_o have_v the_o very_a word_n of_o god_n and_o when_o all_o come_v to_o all_o though_o sometime_o you_o will_v make_v the_o poor_a simple_a people_n believe_v that_o in_o expound_v the_o scripture_n you_o will_v follow_v the_o uniform_a consent_n of_o holy_a father_n and_o counsel_n yet_o both_o this_o cardinal_n hosius_n in_o his_o triple_a dialogue_n and_o cardinal_n cusan_a in_o his_o 2._o epist_n ad_fw-la bohemos_n tell_v we_o &_o teach_v we_o plain_o to_o understand_v you_o that_o you_o mean_v no_o other_o sense_n they_o agree_v with_o the_o present_a practice_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n when_o tha●_n sense_n be_v give_v not_o once_o blush_v to_o confess_v that_o according_a to_o the_o variableness_n of_o the_o fashion_n and_o practice_v of_o that_o church_n the_o scripture_n must_v be_v understand_v and_o therefore_o cusan_a commend_n that_o obedience_n that_o be_v yield_v thereunto_o simple_o without_o reason_v as_o the_o ox_n or_o ass_n obey_v his_o master_n for_o whatsoever_o sometime_o you_o talk_v of_o pope_n not_o err_v &_o of_o the_o not_o err_v of_o general_a counsel_n or_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o father_n none_o that_o have_v any_o thing_n craveil_v in_o trace_v you_o into_o your_o start_a hole_n when_o otherwise_o you_o see_v you_o must_v needs_o be_v pinch_v &_o take_v to_o your_o shane_n but_o he_o easy_o see_v that_o in_o truth_n none_o of_o these_o no_o nor_o all_o these_o together_o with_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o be_v of_o any_o credit_n and_o authority_n with_o you_o against_o the_o present_a practice_n of_o your_o roman_a church_n one_o father_n or_o the_o present_a pope_n if_o he_o speak_v &_o hold_v with_o that_o though_o all_o the_o father_n beside_o be_v of_o another_o mind_n &_o though_o never_o so_o many_o of_o his_o predecessor_n hold_v otherwise_o yet_o farewell_n they_o in_o this_o case_n you_o will_v and_o must_v prefer_v this_o one_o before_o all_o the_o other_o these_o thing_n be_v most_o true_a &_o notorious_o know_v to_o all_o man_n that_o with_o any_o indifferency_n have_v traveil_v in_o the_o controversy_n betwixt_o you_o &_o we_o every_o one_o have_v cause_n to_o see_v howsoever_o sometime_o you_o will_v seem_v to_o yield_v some_o thing_n to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n that_o you_o be_v at_o a_o flat_a point_n that_o neither_o they_o nor_o any_o authority_n else_o of_o man_n or_o man_n old_a or_o new_a shall_v or_o may_v retain_v any_o sense_n of_o force_n against_o the_o present_a practice_n and_o receive_v opinion_n of_o your_o synagogue_n and_o as_o long_o as_o you_o be_v at_o this_o point_n whatsoever_o you_o have_v say_v of_o heretic_n abuse_v of_o scripture_n as_o though_o you_o be_v the_o only_a man_n that_o have_v care_n right_o to_o use_v they_o &_o understand_v they_o every_o simple_a body_n may_v see_v that_o of_o all_o man_n you_o be_v they_o by_o the_o variableness_n of_o your_o romish_a church_n practice_n which_o be_v most_o likely_a to_o make_v a_o nose_n of_o wax_n and_o leaden_a rule_n both_o of_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o sense_n thereof_o and_o therefore_o whereas_o in_o your_o 23._o c._n you_o bold_o affirm_v that_o to_o draw_v the_o scripture_n by_o violence_n into_o a_o wrong_a sense_n be_v the_o manner_n of_o interpret_n the_o scripture_n call_v at_o this_o day_n the_o pure_a word_n by_o those_o that_o have_v profess_v as_o long_o as_o they_o live_v to_o be_v enemy_n to_o the_o truth_n most_o fit_o may_v be_v understand_v of_o yourselves_o for_o you_o be_v so_o in_o love_n with_o the_o present_a practice_n fashion_n and_o opinion_n of_o your_o roman_a church_n that_o though_o that_o vary_v never_o so_o often_o even_o so_o often_o must_v the_o scripture_n will_v they_o will_v they_o vary_v and_o alter_v their_o sense_n howbeit_o i_o be_o not_o ignorant_a but_o that_o in_o so_o write_v you_o mean_v we_o though_o i_o be_o sure_a you_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v we_o either_o to_o have_v profess_v at_o all_o any_o enmity_n with_o the_o truth_n or_o so_o to_o use_v to_o wrest_v the_o scripture_n but_o because_o this_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o great_a importance_n and_o therefore_o such_o as_o can_v be_v determine_v either_o by_o your_o yea_o or_o our_o nay_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v amiss_o upon_o this_o occasion_n to_o consider_v what_o sound_a rule_n of_o interpret_n there_o be_v that_o by_o the_o same_o it_o may_v be_v try_v whither_o your_o interpret_n of_o the_o scripture_n or_o we_o deserve_v thus_o to_o be_v call_v a_o draw_v of_o the_o scripture_n by_o violence_n to_o a_o corrupt_a sense_n the_o uniform_a consent_n of_o doctor_n you_o will_v often_o seem_v as_o i_o have_v say_v in_o this_o case_n to_o make_v reckon_v of_o as_o of_o a_o sound_n and_o apostolic_a rule_n of_o interpret_n they_o by_o but_o this_o be_v but_o for_o a_o fashion_n for_o you_o have_v give_v we_o &_o do_v daily_o manifest_a proof_n that_o when_o but_o one_o or_o two_o against_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o they_o hold_v with_o your_o currant_n and_o present_a practice_n of_o your_o roman_a church_n that_o now_o be_v that_o that_o one_o or_o two_o of_o they_o over_o weigh_v with_o you_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o beside_o if_o this_o be_v a_o necessary_a rule_n than_o none_o can_v be_v interpreter_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o those_o that_o have_v all_o or_o the_o most_o part_n of_o the_o doctor_n to_o peruse_v few_o or_o none_o then_o ancient_a doctor_n &_o writer_n there_o have_v be_v so_o many_o &_o their_o name_n be_v so_o unknowen_a to_o most_o can_v be_v sure_a when_o they_o have_v the_o consent_n of_o the_o most_o and_o best_a on_o their_o side_n and_o so_o never_o shall_v be_v sure_a of_o the_o sense_n and_o for_o many_o place_n very_o little_a or_o nothing_o oftentimes_o have_v they_o write_v though_o therefore_o we_o will_v not_o shun_v the_o trial_n of_o our_o interpretation_n with_o you_o by_o this_o rule_n yet_o we_o account_v
spirit_n and_o whosoever_o among_o we_o come_v unto_o the_o scripture_n trust_v to_o their_o own_o wit_n and_o so_o puff_v up_o with_o ignorance_n as_o you_o speak_v we_o utter_o mislike_v they_o as_o much_o as_o you_o but_o that_o you_o shall_v give_v forth_o this_o sentence_n of_o you_o in_o such_o general_a term_n against_o simple_a &_o poor_a man_n among_o we_o that_o travel_n in_o the_o scripture_n you_o have_v neither_o reason_n nor_o charity_n in_o so_o do_v common_o such_o rash_a judge_v of_o other_o proceed_v from_o a_o mind_n even_o so_o qualify_v as_o you_o charge_v they_o to_o be_v and_o from_o no_o other_o fountain_n and_o who_o so_o consider_v their_o gross_a ignorance_n and_o error_n that_o remain_v in_o your_o great_a clerk_n every_o where_o notwithstanding_o these_o scripture_n what_o other_o learning_n soever_o they_o pretend_v he_o have_v most_o just_a occasion_n thereby_o to_o judge_v that_o either_o they_o study_v the_o scripture_n very_o little_a or_o else_o that_o they_o come_v to_o they_o with_o the_o mind_n you_o talk_v of_o and_o if_o you_o will_v tell_v we_o plain_o what_o you_o mean_v by_o humility_n of_o spirit_n which_o in_o this_o case_n you_o speak_v of_o we_o shall_v soon_o perceive_v that_o thereby_o you_o understand_v not_o true_a christian_a humility_n which_o through_o a_o base_a conceit_n that_o it_o breed_v in_o the_o owner_n stir_v he_o up_o the_o more_o earnest_o to_o crave_v assistance_n of_o god_n spirit_n and_o by_o diligent_a search_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o more_o careful_a use_n of_o all_o good_a mean_n to_o compass_v the_o right_a understanding_n of_o they_o but_o a_o popish_a and_o slavish_a kind_n of_o humility_n which_o must_v breed_v in_o the_o owner_n such_o a_o servile_a depend_v upon_o your_o pope_n will_n and_o church_n tradition_n for_o the_o sense_n thereof_o as_o that_o he_o admit_v no_o sense_n at_o all_o of_o they_o though_o thrust_v upon_o he_o never_o so_o plain_o by_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o place_n that_o will_v not_o full_o agree_v therewith_o which_o breed_v in_o all_o of_o your_o side_n either_o a_o flat_a give_v over_o all_o read_n of_o they_o or_o else_o such_o a_o read_n of_o they_o as_o that_o they_o must_v bring_v a_o sense_n unto_o they_o from_o the_o tradition_n of_o your_o church_n and_o so_o enforce_v that_o upon_o they_o whither_o they_o will_v or_o no_o for_o howsoever_o the_o scripture_n speak_v the_o church_n tradition_n may_v not_o be_v contrary_v this_o be_v your_o humbleness_n of_o spirit_n when_o you_o have_v bring_v god_n spirit_n speak_v in_o the_o scripture_n in_o subjection_n unto_o your_o popish_a spirit_n but_o this_o be_v a_o proud_a humility_n and_o a_o curse_a meekness_n you_o do_v but_o malicious_o slander_v we_o in_o that_o you_o will_v persuade_v your_o reader_n that_o how_o bad_a and_o simple_a soever_o the_o man_n be_v before_o assoon_o as_o a_o bishop_n have_v make_v he_o minister_v we_o say_v straight_o he_o have_v the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o no_o scripture_n be_v to_o hard_a for_o he_o if_o he_o can_v with_o all_o say_v the_o lord_n and_o rail_v upon_o the_o pope_n etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o i_o must_v tell_v you_o that_o we_o think_v it_o not_o unlawful_a but_o very_o necessary_a to_o paint_v out_o your_o pope_n with_o the_o colour_n that_o be_v due_a unto_o he_o that_o man_n may_v the_o better_a beware_v of_o he_o and_o yet_o we_o count_v that_o no_o rail_n but_o we_o neither_o tie_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o the_o imposition_n of_o the_o bishop_n hand_n nor_o place_v any_o such_o matter_n in_o these_o thing_n here_o mention_v by_o you_o as_o you_o will_v lead_v your_o reader_n to_o imagine_v we_o do_v you_o know_v we_o may_v as_o easy_o and_o suit_n i_o be_o with_o far_o more_o truth_n say_v that_o with_o you_o how_o lewd_a &_o unlearned_a soever_o the_o man_n be_v yet_o when_o one_o of_o your_o bishop_n have_v prie_v he_o them_z if_o he_o can_v call_v the_o pope_n most_o holy_a father_n &_o speak_v reverent_o of_o your_o cardinal_n bishop_n &_o other_o prelate_n &_o say_v fi●_n on_o these_o heretic_n these_o lutheran_n and_o zwinglians_n he_o be_v straight_o a_o famous_a and_o worthy_a catholic_a priest_n with_o you_o but_o whereas_o among_o other_o thing_n you_o object_n that_o as_o a_o fault_n to_o their_o disgrace_n that_o they_o say_v the_o ancient_a doctor_n be_v man_n and_o that_o the_o general_a counsel_n have_v err_v it_o be_v but_o to_o discredit_v they_o with_o the_o simple_a for_o you_o know_v that_o the_o learned_a know_fw-mi that_o both_o father_n and_o counsel_n have_v err_v &_o that_o you_o your_o own_o self_n when_o they_o write_v or_o determine_v any_o thing_n which_o you_o like_v not_o will_n and_o do_v as_o plain_o as_o we_o acknowledge_v the_o same_o for_o which_o point_n let_v a_o man_n read_v andrad_n first_o book_n write_v in_o defence_n of_o the_o tridentine_a faith_n and_o but_o what_o pighius_fw-la have_v write_v of_o purpose_n for_o such_o cause_n to_o discredit_v the_o sixth_o and_o seven_o sinod_n and_o he_o shall_v most_o plain_o perceive_v that_o counsel_n be_v of_o no_o further_a credit_n with_o you_o than_o they_o shall_v be_v find_v to_o say_v nothing_o to_o your_o mislike_n but_o to_o make_v it_o clear_a that_o it_o be_v no_o absurdity_n to_o say_v or_o hold_v that_o counsel_n and_o father_n may_v err_v and_o have_v err_v it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o as_o the_o first_o nicean_n council_n and_o sundry_a after_o according_o decree_v a_o right_a against_o the_o arrian_n for_o the_o truth_n of_o christ_n manhood_n so_o the_o tyrian_a the_o sirmiense_n the_o ariminense_n the_o sebucian_n and_o the_o antiochen_n counsel_v determine_v with_o the_o arrian_n against_o the_o nicean_a and_o the_o truth_n the_o second_o council_n of_o nice_a act._n 5._o agree_v that_o angel_n and_o man_n soul_n be_v bodily_a and_o circumscriptible_a and_o yet_o this_o council_n notwithstanding_o this_o gross_a error_n be_v confirm_v by_o the_o 6_o council_n hold_v at_o constantinople_n which_o pope_n agatho_n have_v allow_v for_o a_o general_a council_n the_o 3._o council_n of_o carthage_n cap._n 23._o determine_v that_o all_o prayer_n at_o the_o altar_n shall_v only_o be_v make_v to_o the_o father_n the_o 2_o council_n of_o ephesus_n be_v on_o eutyches_n the_o heretic_n side_n and_o decree_v for_o he_o your_o late_a counsel_n of_o constance_n and_o basil_n decree_v a_o dangerous_a error_n in_o your_o conceit_n i_o be_o sure_a when_o they_o decree_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o general_a council_n to_o be_v above_o the_o pope_n for_o your_o holy_a father_n can_v not_o be_v quiet_a until_o he_o get_v the_o contrary_n decree_v in_o other_o two_o synod_n at_o ferraria_n and_o florence_n and_o in_o the_o 6_o of_o constantinople_n mention_v before_o there_o be_v a_o perilous_a heresy_n agree_v on_o i_o be_o sure_a in_o your_o judgement_n canonthirty_a six_o against_o your_o pope_n title_n namely_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n shall_v enjoy_v and_o have_v equal_a privilege_n with_o they_o of_o rome_n see_v also_o the_o twenty_o two_o chapter_n of_o the_o milevitan_a council_n ca._n the_o 26._o of_o the_o 3_o council_n at_o carthage_n and_o the_o 92_o chapter_n of_o the_o african_a &_o the_o epistle_n of_o the_o same_o to_o boniface_n &_o celestine_n and_o you_o shall_v find_v plain_a &_o direct_a canon_n against_o the_o supremacy_n that_o now_o your_o pope_n callenge_n you_o be_v best_o therefore_o not_o only_o to_o be_v content_a that_o we_o say_v general_a counsel_n may_v o_z but_o to_o learn_v to_o say_v so_o aswell_o as_o we_o yourselves_o all_o the_o sort_n of_o you_o or_o else_o you_o see_v you_o be_v not_o friend_n to_o your_o holy_a father_n you_o may_v do_v it_o i_o warrant_v you_o without_o any_o discredit_n for_o august_n a_o great_a doctor_n in_o his_o 2._o book_n &_o 3_o chap_n against_o the_o donatist_n say_v that_o the_o very_a general_a counsel_n be_v often_o correct_v the_o former_a by_o the_o late_a as_o often_o as_o by_o trial_n &_o experience_n the_o thing_n be_v open_v that_o before_o be_v shut_v and_o therefore_o dispute_v against_o maximinus_n li._n 3._o ca._n 14._o he_o call_v he_o from_o the_o counsel_n to_o the_o touchstone_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o as_o for_o the_o doctor_n the_o same_z aug._n be_v one_o of_o the_o chief_a of_o they_o in_o his_o 2._o book_n &_o 2._o chap._n against_o cresconius_n plain_o confess_v that_o the_o judge_n or_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n as_o be_v man_n be_v often_o deceive_v &_o therefore_o in_o his_o 2_o book_n of_o one_o baptism_n he_o write_v that_o we_o may_v argue_v &_o doubt_v of_o the_o writing_n of_o any_o bishop_n whosoever_o he_o be_v but_o we_o may_v not_o so_o do_v of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n if_o he_o have_v
gibe_v you_o know_v well_o enough_o who_o have_v a_o right_a unto_o and_o that_o ●heir_a place_n be_v know_v though_o your_o purgatory_n have_v never_o be_v dream_v of_o for_o when_o they_o read_v luther_n work_n they_o be_v lutheran_n when_o they_o meet_v with_o caluin_n work_v they_o be_v caluinist_n &_o at_o the_o last_o they_o do_v not_o know_v which_o side_n indeed_o be_v the_o true_a be_v both_o false_a &_o therefore_o i_o think_v it_o be_v good_a that_o a_o sequestration_n be_v make_v that_o neither_o god_n nor_o the_o devil_n may_v have_v part_n of_o their_o soul_n till_o there_o be_v a_o far_a inquiry_n make_v of_o such_o a_o number_n of_o sect_n &_o that_o some_o good_a and_o honest_a arbitratour_n may_v give_v judgement_n as_o concern_v which_o party_n have_v most_o right_a and_o in_o the_o mean_a while_o i_o beseech_v god_n to_o open_v so_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o people_n that_o they_o may_v see_v both_o your_o error_n and_o their_o own_o and_o that_o through_o the_o abundance_n of_o their_o sin_n he_o permit_v they_o not_o to_o fall_v into_o a_o heathenism_n unto_o the_o which_o you_o do_v seek_v to_o draw_v they_o with_o so_o many_o contrary_a gospel_n the_o xxviii_o chapter_n once_o again_o you_o object_n unto_o we_o the_o contention_n betwixt_o the_o lutheran_n and_o caluinist_n which_o you_o say_v be_v cause_n sufficient_a not_o only_o to_o make_v you_o stay_v from_o yield_v your_o consent_n to_o either_o of_o we_o though_o otherwise_o you_o be_v willing_a to_o forsake_v your_o religion_n which_o wrongful_o you_o call_v catholic_a but_o also_o so_o trouble_v the_o conscience_n of_o they_o that_o read_v the_o book_n write_v on_o both_o side_n that_o they_o be_v lead_v one_o while_n on_o the_o one_o side_n anon_o again_o on_o the_o other_o &_o so_o in_o the_o end_n they_o can_v tell_v of_o what_o religion_n to_o be_v for_o who_o sake_n though_o otherwise_o as_o you_o say_v we_o give_v absolute_a sentence_n that_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v err_v even_o from_o the_o apostle_n time_n to_o this_o present_a in_o pray_v to_o god_n for_o the_o soul_n in_o purgatory_n you_o think_v yet_o we_o shall_v appoint_v some_o three_o place_n or_o other_o to_o receive_v their_o soul_n until_o it_o be_v determine_v with_o of_o these_o belong_v to_o god_n and_o which_o to_o the_o devil_n and_o then_o you_o conclude_v this_o chapter_n with_o a_o solemn_a prayer_n to_o god_n to_o open_v the_o people_n eye_n to_o see_v both_o our_o error_n &_o their_o own_o sin_n lest_o for_o they_o through_o these_o variety_n of_o opinion_n among_o we_o they_o be_v draw_v to_o heathenism_n by_o god_n permission_n this_o contention_n in_o the_o late_a end_n of_o your_o former_a chapter_n you_o wonderful_o amplify_v tell_v we_o of_o great_a battle_n rail_v process_n and_o horrible_a excommunication_n that_o have_v pass_v about_o this_o matter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n on_o both_o side_n and_o yet_o there_o in_o another_o book_n which_o you_o have_v make_v you_o say_v of_o the_o sacrament_n you_o signify_v unto_o we_o that_o you_o have_v bestow_v more_o cost_n to_o amplify_v this_o matter_n against_o this_o &_o such_o like_a out-cry_n of_o these_o man_n about_o this_o matter_n gentle_a reader_n thou_o be_v to_o arm_n and_o strengthen_v thyself_o with_o that_o which_o i_o have_v set_v down_o in_o the_o four_o chapter_n concern_v this_o matter_n whereby_o i_o have_v make_v evident_a demonstration_n unto_o thou_o that_o it_o be_v no_o new_a thing_n among_o the_o famous_a teacher_n in_o the_o church_n and_o true_a member_n thereof_o to_o have_v as_o great_a &_o hot_a contention_n as_o ever_o there_o have_v be_v among_o we_o in_o this_o and_o if_o that_o which_o i_o have_v say_v there_o be_v not_o sufficient_a i_o can_v now_o further_o show_v you_o that_o not_o only_o there_o be_v as_o great_a a_o controversy_n now_o and_o have_v be_v a_o long_a time_n among_o themselves_o the_o nature_n of_o their_o religion_n consider_v as_o any_o they_o can_v charge_v we_o with_o namely_o this_o whither_o their_o pope_n or_o general_a counsel_n have_v the_o great_a and_o high_a authority_n but_o also_o i_o may_v easy_o again_o say_v and_o say_v true_o as_o they_o themselves_o know_v well_o enough_o that_o in_o ancient_a time_n in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n there_o be_v such_o lamentable_a and_o grievous_a contention_n between_o paulinus_n and_o flavianus_n lucifer_n and_o eusebius_n the_o meletian_o and_o eustathian_o all_o yet_o otherwise_o be_v for_o and_o in_o the_o substantial_a point_n of_o religion_n sound_a christian_n as_o that_o with_o great_a trouble_n to_o the_o church_n they_o shun_v one_o another_o communion_n and_o that_o for_o very_a many_o year_n together_o as_o you_o may_v read_v in_o epiphanius_n libro_fw-la 1._o tom._n 2._o in_o theodoret_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 8._o etc._n etc._n in_o socrates_n libro_fw-la 2._o cap._n 33._o &_o 34._o and_o in_o zozomen_n libro_fw-la 2._o cap._n 17._o &_o 18._o and_o we_o read_v histor_n tripart_v libro_fw-la 1._o cap._n 12._o that_o epiphanius_n and_o chrysostome_n be_v at_o such_o hot_a contention_n and_o enmity_n and_o yet_o they_o be_v famous_a christian_n and_o bishop_n both_o that_o depart_a one_o from_o the_o other_o the_o one_o spiteful_o say_v to_o the_o other_o thou_o shall_v never_o die_v bishop_n and_o the_o other_o say_v to_o he_o as_o uncharitable_o neither_o shall_v thou_o get_v home_o to_o thy_o bishopric_n alive_a both_o which_o their_o imprecation_n or_o prediction_n as_o the_o story_n show_v come_v even_o so_o to_o pass_v for_o chrysostome_n die_v banish_v and_o the_o other_o before_o he_o get_v home_o to_o cyprus_n if_o you_o will_v see_v what_o controversy_n there_o be_v betwixt_o cyprian_a cornelius_n and_o stephanus_n bishop_n of_o rome_n read_v augustine_n contra_fw-la donatistas_n libro_fw-la 5._o cap._n 23._o &_o 25._o and_o euseb_n lib._n 7._o cap._n 3._o &_o 4._o and_o who_o be_v so_o ignorant_a that_o the_o church_n story_n and_o ancient_a writer_n minister_n unto_o we_o but_o too_o too_o great_a store_n in_o all_o age_n of_o controversy_n and_o those_o also_o too_o hoat_o follow_v even_o among_o christian_n of_o great_a name_n and_o fame_n in_o their_o time_n and_o therefore_o what_o vain_a thing_n be_v it_o either_o for_o you_o or_o any_o of_o your_o fellow_n in_o this_o sort_n still_o to_o amplify_v this_o one_o controversy_n about_o the_o sacrament_n among_o we_o as_o though_o it_o be_v sufficient_a cause_n of_o all_o or_o of_o any_o of_o these_o thing_n which_o you_o infer_v thereupon_o against_o us._n have_v there_o be_v any_o wisdom_n in_o they_o that_o live_v in_o these_o ancient_a time_n when_o these_o contention_n be_v that_o i_o have_v speak_v of_o here_o and_o elsewhere_o thereupon_o to_o have_v gather_v either_o all_o or_o any_o of_o these_o thing_n nay_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o if_o thereupon_o they_o have_v either_o stand_v a_o loof_o from_o the_o truth_n grow_v neuter_n or_o atheist_n that_o they_o have_v be_v without_o excuse_n before_o god_n for_o see_v to_o know_v the_o truth_n and_o to_o be_v settle_v in_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n so_o necessary_a as_o it_o be_v the_o more_o difficult_a it_o be_v make_v by_o such_o mean_n to_o find_v it_o out_o the_o more_o thereby_o they_o that_o be_v the_o lord_n and_o have_v any_o grace_n be_v provoke_v to_o labour_n and_o search_v to_o find_v it_o and_o to_o settle_v themselves_o the_o strongly_a in_o it_o and_o therefore_o see_v such_o offence_n have_v be_v and_o always_o in_o some_o measure_n be_v like_a to_o be_v for_o the_o exercise_v of_o the_o church_n and_o trial_n of_o god_n child_n you_o and_o such_o as_o you_o that_o by_o such_o discourse_n as_o this_o lead_v the_o people_n to_o gather_v such_o lesson_n thereupon_o as_o to_o suspend_v their_o judgement_n till_o all_o part_n be_v agree_v or_o now_o to_o be_v carry_v this_o way_n now_o that_o way_n as_o long_o as_o the_o contention_n last_v seem_v to_o be_v dispose_v to_o teach_v the_o people_n to_o learn_v how_o to_o be_v atheist_n if_o you_o mind_v to_o have_v they_o settle_v in_o religion_n and_o preserve_v from_o neutralitie_n the_o mother_n of_o atheism_n it_o be_v your_o part_n to_o join_v with_o we_o especial_o in_o these_o great_a diversity_n of_o opinion_n about_o religion_n that_o be_v now_o a_o day_n in_o the_o world_n to_o persuade_v they_o most_o diligent_o to_o search_v the_o scripture_n and_o thereby_o to_o try_v all_o spirit_n and_o their_o opinion_n whither_o they_o be_v of_o god_n or_o no_o yea_o even_o so_o much_o the_o more_o for_o these_o variety_n sake_n that_o so_o they_o may_v find_v the_o truth_n and_o be_v settle_v in_o it_o for_o they_o may_v not_o faint_a or_o give_v over_o thus_o do_v for_o this_o for_o necessary_a it_o be_v that_o
show_v yourself_o to_o be_v not_o only_o one_o that_o dare_v write_v any_o thing_n how_o gross_a a_o lie_n soever_o it_o be_v but_o as_o malicious_a in_o your_o judgement_n as_o ever_o be_v any_o first_o you_o set_v down_o not_o only_o that_o the_o anabaptist_n condemn_v they_o that_o die_v in_o luther_n &_o caluins_n religion_n to_o hell_n which_o be_v likely_a enough_o because_o they_o be_v frantic_a heretic_n &_o have_v deny_v the_o foundation_n but_o also_o the_o lutheran_n and_o caluinist_n will_n &_o do_v give_v that_o judgement_n one_o of_o another_o and_o yet_o i_o be_o sure_a you_o be_v not_o able_a true_o to_o say_v that_o ever_o any_o of_o caluins_n judgement_n say_v or_o write_v so_o second_o though_o your_o own_o judgement_n be_v short_a yet_o so_o it_o be_v set_v down_o that_o you_o show_v that_o you_o believe_v that_o all_o the_o three_o sort_n go_v thither_o and_o such_o care_n &_o compassion_n your_o catholic_a heart_n have_v of_o it_o when_o you_o have_v do_v that_o you_o jest_n at_o it_o account_v yourselves_o fool_n if_o you_o shall_v stay_v their_o passage_n thither_o for_o if_o we_o be_v all_o go_v for_o company_n you_o think_v you_o shall_v be_v at_o quiet_a you_o say_v &_o hell_n will_v be_v so_o full_a that_o the_o devil_n will_v long_o for_o no_o more_o company_n be_v this_o your_o popish_a divinity_n to_o make_v sport_n at_o the_o damnation_n of_o man_n and_o hold_v you_o this_o for_o a_o principle_n that_o it_o be_v folly_n to_o stay_v man_n from_o run_v together_o to_o hell_n indeed_o it_o may_v be_v for_o i_o have_v read_v that_o it_o be_v a_o rule_n among_o you_o that_o if_o your_o pope_n lead_v headlong_o with_o he_o multitude_n by_o heap_n to_o hell_n yet_o no_o man_n may_v be_v so_o hardy_a as_o to_o say_v unto_o he_o why_o do_v thou_o so_o distinct_a 40._o cap._n si_fw-mi papa_n but_o howsoever_o you_o account_v this_o divinity_n certain_a i_o be_o you_o will_v find_v it_o that_o in_o no_o two_o thing_n more_o the_o devil_n show_v themselves_o devil_n then_o in_o these_o in_o laugh_v and_o rejoice_v in_o the_o damnation_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n and_o in_o let_v they_o go_v free_o for_o company_n to_o hell_n without_o stoppage_n as_o many_o as_o will_n true_o true_o god_n must_v take_v from_o you_o this_o profane_a and_o devilish_a spirit_n of_o you_o and_o give_v you_o grace_n to_o repent_v of_o it_o or_o else_o you_o may_v be_v sure_a how_o many_o soever_o die_v and_o go_v to_o hell_n before_o you_o hell_n will_v long_o for_o you_o and_o you_o shall_v find_v place_n and_o room_n enough_o there_o i_o warrant_v you_o the_o xxxii_o chapter_n there_o be_v a_o certain_a minister_n of_o the_o lutheran_n call_v faction_n call_v what_o will_v not_o a_o passionate_a adversary_n say_v to_o disgrace_v they_o that_o he_o write_v against_o if_o like_a testimony_n of_o man_n of_o your_o religion_n write_v yet_o in_o some_o point_v one_o against_o another_o will_v be_v admit_v it_o be_v a_o easy_a matter_n thus_o to_o discredit_v your_o whole_a faction_n heshusius_fw-la the_o which_o within_o these_o three_o year_n have_v make_v a_o book_n against_o caluin_n peter_n boquin_n theodore_n de_fw-fr beza_n &_o gulielmus_fw-la elcimalcius_fw-la &_o he_o say_v among_o other_o thing_n that_o carolstadius_n zuenfeldius_n caluin_n &_o beza_n do_v show_v well_o the_o uncertainty_n of_o their_o faith_n by_o the_o diversity_n of_o opinion_n that_o there_o be_v among_o they_o the_o which_o fault_n say_v he_o do_v proceed_v of_o this_o that_o they_o have_v forsake_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o follow_v the_o opinion_n of_o their_o own_o head_n himself_o head_n and_o yet_o in_o truth_n lie_v therein_o himself_o and_o in_o that_o very_a book_n the_o say_v author_n do_v give_v the_o lie_n to_o caluin_n because_o that_o in_o that_o he_o write_v against_o the_o above_o name_v westphal_n he_o say_v that_o martin_n luther_n and_o his_o adherent_n do_v acknowledge_v he_o as_o their_o brother_n the_o which_o thing_n he_o maintain_v to_o be_v false_a us._n false_a great_a &_o more_o disagreement●_n there_o be_v among_o you_o papist_n and_o therefore_o these_o conclusion_n press_v you_o rather_o than_o us._n thus_o see_v you_o agree_v together_o like_o dog_n and_o cat_n &_o that_o all_o these_o sect_n have_v confirm_v their_o false_a doctrine_n with_o the_o shed_n of_o their_o own_o blood_n it_o be_v best_o to_o conclude_v as_o we_o have_v say_v before_o that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o pain_n nor_o the_o torment_n that_o do_v make_v the_o righteous_a martyr_n except_o we_o shall_v say_v that_o diverse_a contrary_a messenger_n be_v send_v from_o one_o master_n the_o which_o be_v notorious_o false_a for_o that_o good_a king_n from_o who_o the_o truth_n do_v come_v indeed_o have_v so_o good_a a_o memory_n that_o he_o do_v never_o send_v contrary_a messenger_n but_o rather_o his_o faithful_a seruamt_n do_v all_o with_o one_o voice_n and_o one_o accord_n honour_v he_o as_o the_o father_n of_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n the_o xxxii_o chapter_n here_o again_o as_o in_o the_o former_a chapter_n you_o labour_v to_o discredit_v caluin_n beza_n and_o other_o only_o with_o the_o testimony_n of_o heshusius_fw-la a_o utter_a enemy_n of_o they_o about_o the_o quarrel_n of_o the_o controversy_n of_o the_o sacrament_n who_o heat_n of_o contention_n and_o a_o desire_n therefore_o to_o disgrace_v his_o adversary_n rather_o than_o just_a cause_n lead_v thus_o to_o write_v for_o what_o reason_n have_v he_o there_o to_o join_v zuenfeldius_n with_o caluin_n and_o beza_n with_o who_o they_o hold_v no_o more_o communion_n and_o fellowship_n than_o he_o himself_o and_o corolstadius_fw-la who_o be_v a_o doctor_n in_o wittenberg_n in_o luther_n time_n and_o a_o associate_n to_o he_o in_o disputation_n against_o ecchius_n he_o may_v with_o more_o reason_n have_v join_v with_o luther_n himself_o and_o his_o partner_n then_o with_o these_o and_o howsoever_o the_o intemperate_a heat_n of_o contention_n embolden_v heshusius_fw-la to_o give_v caluin_n the_o lie_n most_o certain_a yet_o it_o be_v that_o melancthon_n a_o great_a friend_n of_o luther_n who_o heshusius_fw-la can_v deny_v be_v a_o adherent_a of_o luther_n account_v of_o caluin_n as_o of_o a_o good_a brother_n for_o in_o a_o epistle_n which_o he_o write_v to_o he_o he_o call_v he_o charissim●_n fratrem_fw-la most_o dear_a brother_n it_o be_v the_o 187._o epistle_n in_o the_o book_n of_o caluins_n epistle_n and_o i_o be_o persuade_v that_o what_o caluin_n write_v he_o be_v able_a to_o justify_v in_o this_o behalf_n how_o rude_o soever_o angry_a heshusius_fw-la give_v he_o the_o lie_n this_o objection_n of_o our_o disagreement_n have_v be_v oft_o enough_o urge_v and_o answer_v already_o it_o seem_v that_o you_o have_v great_a penury_n of_o argument_n against_o we_o when_o this_o must_v come_v in_o thus_o often_o especial_o see_v as_o i_o have_v show_v great_a contention_n have_v be_v among_o yourselves_o in_o which_o case_n will_v you_o have_v think_v a_o man_n shall_v have_v deal_v well_o with_o you_o if_o the_o bitter_a speech_n of_o the_o one_o side_n have_v always_o be_v take_v as_o sufficient_a argument_n to_o disgrace_v the_o other_o or_o will_v you_o have_v like_v that_o thereupon_o a_o man_n shall_v infer_v as_o you_o do_v that_o you_o agree_v no_o better_o than_o dog_n and_o cat_n and_o that_o therefore_o you_o so_o differ_v among_o yourselves_o come_v not_o both_o from_o one_o master_n god_n who_o use_v not_o to_o send_v contrary_a messenger_n this_o have_v be_v a_o hard_a conclusion_n against_o a_o number_n of_o you_o in_o the_o time_n of_o your_o schism_n betwixt_o your_o pope_n and_o antipope_n and_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o contention_n of_o your_o friar_n with_o your_o other_o prelate_n and_o also_o among_o themselves_o whereof_o i_o have_v put_v you_o in_o remembrance_n before_o chapter_n twenty_o eight_o and_o yet_o if_o you_o will_v needs_o meet_v this_o measure_n unto_o we_o upon_o occasion_n of_o this_o one_o controversy_n about_o the_o manner_n of_o christ_n real_a presence_n you_o must_v be_v content_v that_o upon_o more_o and_o great_a contention_n among_o you_o we_o send_v you_o home_o as_o good_a measure_n again_o as_o for_o your_o conclusion_n that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o pain_n but_o the_o cause_n that_o make_v a_o true_a martyr_n we_o grant_v it_o you_o at_o the_o first_o but_o where_o to_o make_v way_n to_o bring_v it_o in_o here_o again_o you_o insinuate_v not_o only_o that_o the_o donatist_n adamite_n seruetus_fw-la and_o the_o anabaptiste_n of_o who_o you_o have_v speak_v in_o your_o former_a chapter_n have_v die_v to_o confirm_v their_o false_a religion_n which_o we_o grant_v you_o but_o that_o these_o also_o that_o you_o speak_v of_o last_o lutheran_n and_o zuenfeldians_n have_v
as_o you_o be_v and_o that_o he_o suffer_v death_n to_o sustain_v your_o religion_n then_o let_v we_o see_v what_o good_a fruit_n this_o do_v produce_v unto_o we_o those_o that_o have_v write_v the_o story_n of_o boheme_n and_o among_o other_o follow_v other_o your_o author_n you_o know_v be_v a_o great_a papist_n and_o afterwards_o a_o pope_n &_o therefore_o worthy_o he_o be_v to_o be_v suspect_v as_o a_o partial_a reporter_n and_o yet_o cap._n 35._o before_o he_o be_v enforce_v to_o confess_v that_o the_o senate_n have_v secret_o murder_v so_o many_o of_o those_o that_o call_v the_o pope_n antichrist_n that_o the_o blood_n of_o they_o run_v out_o of_o the_o gate_n bewray_v it_o whereupon_o this_o and_o some_o other_o extremity_n follow_v aeneas_n siluius_n do_v testify_v that_o in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n god_n 1418._o there_o be_v a_o certain_a monk_n that_o become_v a_o hussite_n in_o the_o city_n of_o prage_n which_o be_v the_o metropolitan_a of_o that_o kingdom_n the_o which_o accompany_v with_o a_o number_n of_o companion_n as_o zealous_a as_o himself_o they_o do_v execute_v so_o horrible_a a_o cruelty_n that_o eleven_o of_o the_o principal_a magistrate_n be_v drive_v to_o fly_v from_o the_o city_n to_o save_v their_o life_n and_o seven_o more_o for_o in_o all_o they_o be_v 18_o be_v take_v by_o they_o they_o do_v cast_v they_o out_o at_o the_o window_n of_o their_o own_o house_n and_o do_v kill_v they_o with_o their_o spear_n as_o they_o fall_v this_o be_v do_v sigismondus_n be_v then_o emperor_n in_o the_o time_n of_o martin_n the_o first_o pope_n of_o rome_n of_o that_o name_n &_o vneslaus_n be_v then_o king_n of_o boheme_n the_o next_o year_n after_o the_o death_n of_o this_o say_v vneslaus_n they_o do_v spoil_v far_o spoil_v this_o all_o be_v too_o much_o and_o more_o than_o either_o your_o author_n or_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o matter_n will_v beat_v by_o far_o all_o the_o monastery_n abbey_v and_o church_n of_o of_o the_o say_v kingdom_n and_o among_o other_o one_o john_n zischa_n who_o be_v their_o captain_n in_o the_o city_n of_o prage_n he_o make_v they_o all_o pass_v through_o the_o edge_n of_o the_o sword_n without_o spare_a man_n woman_n or_o child_n and_o the_o like_a be_v do_v in_o another_o town_n of_o the_o say_v kingdom_n call_v messim_n the_o year_n 1423._o it_o be_v too_o tedious_a to_o write_v all_o their_o cruelty_n they_o do_v not_o care_n whither_o those_o of_o their_o company_n be_v of_o their_o sect_n or_o no_o caspinian_n no_o this_o be_v your_o slander_n for_o any_o thing_n that_o i_o can_v see_v in_o your_o author_n or_o any_o where_o else_o but_o indeed_o no_o people_n s●_n barbarous_a but_o you_o can_v find_v in_o your_o heart_n to_o us●_n they_o against_o good_a christian_n yea_o he_o have_v be_v a_o pope_n of_o rome_n that_o have_v betray_v a_o christian_a emperor_n into_o the_o h●nd●_n of_o the_o turk_n for_o so_o deal_v gregory_n 9_o with_o the_o emperor_n frederick_n witness_n caspinian_n for_o some_o be_v idumean_n some_o palestine_n some_o moabite_n and_o some_o other_o amelecite_v even_o as_o of_o your_o bountiful_a goodness_n you_o call_v all_o those_o that_o will_v not_o be_v of_o your_o sect_n papist_n infidel_n hypocrite_n &_o idolater_n and_o therefore_o we_o may_v just_o say_v that_o you_o be_v their_o right_n hear_v apparent_a although_o you_o have_v go_v somewhat_o before_o they_o and_o as_o our_o saviour_n say_v accomplish_v the_o measure_n of_o your_o father_n by_o the_o heroical_a act_n that_o you_o have_v do_v in_o this_o france_n this_o you_o may_v whole_o thank_v yourselves_o for_o the_o desolate_a estate_n of_o france_n almost_o desolate_a kingdom_n of_o france_n there_o need_v no_o other_o witness_n to_o prove_v it_o but_o the_o testimony_n of_o your_o own_o eye_n and_o ear_n which_o have_v hear_v and_o see_v more_o almost_o than_o any_o man_n can_v write_v therefore_o i_o beseech_v you_o not_o to_o reproach_n any_o more_o the_o abuse_n of_o our_o ecclesiastical_a minister_n for_o although_o it_o be_v so_o that_o they_o have_v need_n of_o some_o reformation_n yet_o i_o do_v think_v it_o be_v necessary_a to_o choose_v some_o better_o stay_v person_n than_o you_o be_v sentence_n be_v if_o you_o may_v be_v judge_n this_o will_v easy_o be_v the_o sentence_n for_o you_o have_v do_v more_o harm_n in_o five_o year_n than_o we_o have_v do_v in_o 1500._o s._n augustine_n in_o the_o first_o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n add_v god_n capite_fw-la 1._o you_o may_v have_v add_v do_v magnify_v in_o the_o christian_n behalf_n the_o divine_a favour_n of_o god_n for_o he_o do_v write_v that_o when_o the_o goth_n do_v destroy_v and_o spoil_v the_o city_n of_o rome_n the_o roman_n although_o they_o be_v not_o christian_n do_v retire_v themselves_o for_o their_o safeguard_n into_o the_o church_n and_o temple_n of_o the_o martyr_n and_o the_o goth_n be_v but_o a_o barbarous_a nation_n have_v that_o respect_n to_o god_n that_o they_o never_o dare_v nor_o will_v enter_v into_o those_o holy_a place_n to_o do_v they_o any_o displeasure_n virtue_n displeasure_n it_o be_v a_o wonder_n that_o yo●_n that_o have_v so_o open_o slaire_v thousand_o in_o church_n since_o your_o most_o barbarous_a and_o faithless_a massacre_n of_o late_a in_o france_n begin_v &_o as_o it_o be_v notorious_o know_v not_o yet_o beyond_o the_o memory_n of_o man_n in_o merindall_n and_o cabriers_n shall_v yet_o be_v so_o impudent_a to_o object_v this_o to_o we_o as_o a_o fault_n which_o yet_o you_o have_v not_o prove_v to_o have_v be_v commit_v by_o we_o wherein_o you_o glory_v as_o a_o virtue_n you_o which_o make_v so_o great_a profession_n of_o the_o gospel_n have_v show_v yourselves_o a_o great_a deal_n more_o cruel_a than_o those_o barbarous_a people_n for_o they_o do_v pardon_v all_o those_o that_o go_v to_o the_o temple_n and_o you_o have_v in_o many_o place_n spoil_v the_o church_n and_o murder_v all_o those_o that_o you_o find_v in_o they_o so_o that_o one_o may_v well_o say_v to_o you_o that_o that_o optatus_n mylevitanus_n in_o his_o book_n con_v parm._n donatist_n the_o which_o be_v that_o the_o donatist_n aught_o to_o be_v content_a &_o you_o likewise_o to_o have_v wound_v the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o have_v divide_v the_o people_n of_o god_n us._n god_n if_o you_o will_v have_v learn_v this_o lesson_n it_o have_v be_v well_o with_o us._n at_o the_o lest_o you_o shall_v have_v spare_v the_o altar_n and_o the_o temple_n &_o not_o to_o make_v war_n against_o the_o stone_n the_o xxxv_o chapter_n now_o in_o this_o you_o crave_v the_o key_n to_o enter_v by_o into_o our_o garden_n to_o visit_v our_o tree_n that_o so_o you_o may_v see_v the_o fruit_n of_o our_o religion_n have_v get_v in_o in_o your_o own_o pleasant_a conceit_n after_o you_o have_v cast_v your_o eye_n about_o you_o and_o look_v a_o while_n upon_o our_o tree_n first_o you_o bid_v we_o read_v all_o the_o story_n since_o christ_n and_o tell_v we_o that_o so_o do_v we_o shall_v find_v that_o all_o those_o sect_n that_o have_v leave_v your_o romish_a religion_n or_o church_n have_v do_v more_o mischief_n in_o one_o year_n be_v separate_v from_o you_o than_o they_o do_v in_o a_o hundred_o before_o now_o do_v as_o you_o will_v we_o we_o find_v indeed_o great_a hurt_n have_v be_v do_v by_o the_o ancient_a heretic_n for_o the_o space_n of_o six_o hundred_o year_n that_o have_v separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o then_o be_v but_o withal_o we_o find_v that_o our_o church_n be_v far_o like_a that_o church_n than_o your_o roman_a church_n that_o now_o be_v and_o since_o what_o hurt_v soever_o have_v be_v do_v by_o one_o or_o other_o that_o have_v separate_v themselves_o from_o you_o though_o we_o challenge_v not_o communion_n with_o every_o one_o that_o have_v so_o do_v your_o own_o do_n we_o find_v in_o story_n have_v far_o exceed_v they_o in_o all_o kind_n of_o impiety_n thus_o have_v in_o these_o general_a word_n set_v a_o good_a face_n upon_o it_o as_o though_o you_o can_v say_v very_o much_o of_o the_o bad_a fruit_n which_o you_o find_v grow_v of_o our_o religion_n you_o begin_v at_o the_o year_n 1418_o with_o the_o stir_n in_o bohemia_n lay_v to_o our_o charge_n the_o murder_a of_o seven_o magistrate_n of_o prage_n by_o a_o certain_a monk_n and_o his_o companion_n &_o sundry_a other_o thing_n do_v by_o john_n zischa_n and_o his_o army_n in_o the_o time_n of_o those_o war_n there_o than_o you_o lay_v to_o our_o charge_n also_o once_o again_o all_o the_o trouble_n of_o late_a in_o france_n prefer_v we_o for_o cruelty_n before_o the_o goathe_n that_o conquer_v rome_n and_o yet_o spare_v their_o temple_n and_o those_o that_o
do_v we_o have_v assurance_n as_o long_o as_o we_o ask_v according_a to_o his_o will_n the_o first_o of_o john_n and_o the_o five_o because_o he_o be_v merciful_a and_o true_a and_o faithful_a in_o all_o his_o promise_n and_o therefore_o we_o think_v it_o be_v a_o sure_a way_n to_o run_v to_o he_o and_o to_o trust_v to_o he_o in_o all_o our_o need_n and_o necessity_n if_o we_o will_v have_v a_o advocate_n either_o of_o mediation_n or_o intercession_n unto_o he_o we_o have_v one_o for_o all_o even_o jesus_n our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n for_o as_o paul_n first_o teach_v we_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n so_o likewise_o in_o the_o same_o verse_n he_o assure_v we_o there_o be_v but_o one_o mediator_n between_o god_n &_o man_n which_o be_v the_o man_n christ_n jesus_n 1._o tim._n 2._o and_o john_n join_v with_o he_o in_o his_o first_o epistle_n &_o second_o chapter_n point_v he_o only_o unto_o we_o to_o be_v our_o advocate_n with_o the_o father_n and_o he_o be_v the_o 1_o fountain_n of_o all_o grace_n &_o mercy_n the_o 2_o author_n and_o finisher_n of_o our_o faith_n 3_o the_o door_n of_o the_o sheepfold_n 4_o the_o way_n truth_n &_o life_n his_o 5_o name_n be_v the_o only_a name_n whereby_o come_v salvation_n 6_o and_o he_o be_v he_o but_o by_o who_o he_o himself_o have_v tell_v we_o none_o come_v unto_o the_o father_n 1_o john_n 1._o vers_fw-la 14._o &_o colos_n 1.19_o 2_o heb._n 12.2_o 3_o john_n 10.7_o 4_o john_n 14._o vers_fw-la 6._o 5_o act._n 4_o 12._o 6_o john_n 14.6_o especial_o see_v he_o have_v allure_v all_o that_o be_v heavy_a load_v and_o weary_a to_o come_v unto_o he_o mat._n 11.28_o he_o be_v of_o that_o property_n that_o we_o know_v he_o be_v not_o to_o break_v a_o break_a reed_n nor_o to_o quench_v the_o smoke_a flax_n esa_n 42._o ve_fw-la 3._o and_o yet_o able_a perfect_o to_o save_v those_o that_o come_v unto_o god_n by_o he_o see_v he_o ever_o live_v to_o make_v intercession_n for_o they_o he._n 7.25_o we_o know_v and_o be_v sure_a we_o shall_v do_v he_o the_o great_a wrong_n that_o may_v be_v consider_v also_o that_o he_o have_v upon_o his_o word_n assure_v we_o that_o whatsoever_o we_o ask_v the_o father_n in_o his_o name_n believe_v we_o shall_v obtain_v it_o mat._n 21_o 22._o and_o john_n 14.13_o if_o we_o shall_v leave_v he_o at_o all_o one_o so_o able_a and_o willing_a every_o way_n to_o serve_v our_o turn_n alone_o to_o run_v unto_o any_o saint_n or_o angel_n of_o he_o and_o therefore_o as_o we_o dare_v make_v our_o prayer_n to_o none_o but_o unto_o god_n so_o dare_v we_o use_v no_o other_o mediator_n or_o advocate_n unto_o he_o but_o only_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n we_o be_v sure_a it_o savour_v strong_o of_o lack_n of_o faith_n in_o we_o in_o he_o if_o not_o of_o flat_a antichristian_a blasphemy_n once_o but_o to_o imagine_v that_o any_o be_v saint_n or_o she_o saint_n in_o heaven_n or_o angel_n will_v be_v ready_a to_o take_v compassion_n of_o we_o or_o that_o we_o may_v be_v bold_a to_o use_v any_o of_o their_o intercession_n to_o god_n them_z his_o for_o in_o all_o thing_n he_o become_v like_a unto_o we_o his_o brethren_n that_o he_o may_v be_v merciful_a and_o a_o faithful_a high_a priest_n in_o thing_n concern_v god_n that_o he_o may_v make_v reconciliation_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o people_n for_o in_o that_o he_o suffer_v and_o be_v tempt_v he_o be_v able_a to_o succour_v they_o that_o be_v tempt_v heb._n 2.17.18_o for_o we_o have_v not_o a_o high_a priest_n which_o can_v be_v touch_v with_o the_o feel_n of_o our_o infirmity_n but_o be_v in_o all_o thing_n in_o like_a sort_n tempt_v yet_o without_o sin_n let_v we_o therefore_o go_v bold_o unto_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n that_o we_o may_v receive_v mercy_n and_o find_v grace_n through_o he_o in_o time_n of_o need_n heb._n 4.15.16_o and_o let_v we_o take_v heed_n in_o this_o case_n while_o we_o follow_v your_o example_n in_o leave_v he_o and_o run_v to_o saint_n to_o pray_v for_o we_o we_o commit_v not_o the_o two_o evil_n that_o the_o prophet_n jeremy_n charge_v the_o people_n of_o israel_n withal_o jer._n 2.12_o &_o 13._o that_o be_v forsake_v the_o live_a fountain_n a_o fountain_n of_o live_a water_n to_o dig_v unto_o ourselves_o pit_n even_o break_v pit_n that_o will_v hold_v no_o water_n for_o as_o they_o he_o say_v in_o respect_n of_o these_o two_o fault_n o_o you_o heaven_n be_v astonish_v at_o this_o &_o be_v afraid_a &_o confound_a say_v the_o lord_n so_o worthy_o may_v we_o say_v in_o respect_n of_o this_o your_o folly_n and_o double_a sin_n in_o this_o point_n for_o though_o to_o lessen_v somewhat_o your_o sin_n herein_o you_o will_v seem_v to_o plead_v only_o for_o pray_v unto_o the_o saint_n in_o paradise_n to_o help_v you_o with_o their_o prayer_n that_o nothing_o indeed_o can_v help_v you_o for_o not_o only_o for_o these_o reason_n be_v even_o that_o abominable_a and_o unlawful_a but_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o you_o in_o your_o practice_n as_o i_o have_v show_v at_o large_a in_o my_o answer_n to_o your_o publisher_n preface_n most_o gross_o and_o antichristian_o pray_v unto_o the_o saint_n themselves_o through_o their_o merit_n to_o procure_v you_o the_o thing_n you_o sue_v for_o yea_o you_o be_v go_v so_o far_o that_o according_a to_o the_o multitude_n of_o your_o necessity_n the_o variety_n of_o occupation_n and_o the_o distinction_n of_o region_n and_o country_n you_o have_v appoint_v the_o saint_n to_o their_o several_a office_n and_o limit_n therein_o imitate_v the_o idolatrous_a heathen_a who_o imagine_v that_o there_o be_v many_o god_n think_v it_o good_a to_o know_v every_o one_o of_o their_o office_n that_o according_o they_o may_v use_v they_o as_o august_n de_fw-fr civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la lib._n 4._o &_o 22._o note_v and_o especial_o as_o touch_v the_o bless_a virgin_n mary_n under_o pretence_n of_o your_o love_n and_o devotion_n towards_o she_o you_o have_v so_o forget_v your_o duty_n &_o religion_n towards_o her_o son_n that_o all_o the_o title_n proper_a to_o her_o son_n you_o have_v invest_v she_o withal_o call_v her_o mediatris_n saluatris_fw-la gate_n of_o heaven_n queen_n of_o heaven_n and_o your_o only_a hope_n &_o refuge_n yea_o you_o have_v not_o stick_v call_v upon_o she_o to_o cry_v unto_o her_o say_n command_v thy_o son_n use_v the_o right_n of_o a_o mother_n &_o so_o show_v thyself_o to_o have_v the_o authority_n of_o a_o mother_n and_o yet_o if_o you_o will_v confess_v the_o truth_n in_o this_o point_n you_o both_o shall_v and_o will_v acknowledge_v that_o you_o have_v learn_v thus_o to_o honour_v she_o &_o the_o other_o saint_n neither_o of_o scripture_n nor_o of_o any_o ancient_a father_n but_o of_o curse_a &_o condenned_a heretic_n whatsoever_o either_o you_o here_o or_o any_o of_o your_o fellow_n else_o where_o pretend_v to_o the_o contrary_n for_o epiphanius_n write_v first_o against_o certain_a heretic_n call_v antidicomarionite_n lib._n 3._o tom._n 2._o haeres_fw-la 78._o and_o next_o against_o other_o call_v colliridian_n haeres_fw-la 79._o of_o the_o same_o book_n and_o come_v he_o show_v how_o that_o these_o heretic_n exceed_v even_o as_o you_o do_v in_o offer_v unto_o mary_n and_o in_o honour_v and_o worship_v of_o she_o against_o who_o he_o there_o at_o large_a invei_v bitter_o as_o against_o most_o vile_a idolater_n for_o the_o same_o tell_v they_o that_o so_o to_o do_v be_v ungodly_a and_o wicked_a and_o strange_a from_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n yea_o altogether_o a_o work_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o a_o doctrine_n of_o the_o unclean_a spirit_n for_o mary_n be_v no_o god_n neither_o be_v she_o give_v we_o say_v he_o to_o be_v adore_v though_o she_o be_v a_o most_o excellent_a &_o honourable_a virgin_n but_o say_v he_o to_o forewarneman_n of_o which_o kind_n of_o too_o much_o admire_v she_o christ_n say_v unto_o she_o woman_n what_o have_v i_o to_o do_v with_o thou_o and_o a_o little_a after_o in_o the_o latter_a place_n he_o say_v neque_fw-la elias_n adorandus_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o be_v neither_o be_v elias_n to_o be_v adore_v or_o pray_v unto_o though_o he_o live_v nor_o john_n nor_o tecla_n nor_o any_o other_o saint_n for_o the_o old_a error_n shall_v not_o over-rule_v we_o that_o we_o leave_v the_o live_a god_n and_o worship_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v make_v by_o he_o for_o they_o worship_v and_o adore_v the_o creature_n praeter_fw-la creatorem_fw-la beside_o the_o creator_n &_o they_o become_v fool_n rom._n 1._o for_o if_o a_o angel_n will_v not_o be_v adore_v how_o much_o more_o will_v not_o she_o that_o be_v bear_v of_o anna._n and_o therefore_o in_o the_o end_n conclude_v mariam_n nemo_fw-la